AMATEUR XXX STORIES

-

ALPHABETICAL SEX STORY LISTINGS:

A - B - C - D - E - F - G - H - I - J - K - L - M - N - O - P - Q - R - S - T - U - V - W - X - Y - Z

SweetSmellOfLust

Title: Sweet Smell of Lust

Keywords: mc, mF, fF, inc, nc, bond, teen, mdom, mom, son, brother, sister, daughter, aunt, nephew

Author: Caesar



"A honeymoon couple named Kelly

Spent their honeymoon belly to belly

Because in their haste,

They used library paste

In the place of petroleum jelly."

-author unknown



The Sweet Smell of Lust

by Caesar, copyright 1995-2002

$Revision: 1.10 $ $Date: 2002/04/15 14:07:28 $

Part 1 - written 1995

Part 2 - written 1996

Part 3 - written 1999

Part 4 - written 2000

Part 5 - written 2001



The Sweet Smell of Lust - I (Part 1)

The smell was almost rancid, and David decided to throw out his latest

lab experiment. He only had a single beaker with the light-blue

concoction, and like the last half dozen tries, was about to be

flushed down the toilet. His current standing in Chemistry deemed a

successful completion to this experiment. Which was also his entry

into the High School Science Fair.

His experiment; to produce an aroma that allowed a change in mammals

behavior. Originally he thought it was a simple project, yet when

setting out to create a new scent, his experiment became increasingly

difficult.

So far he was unsuccessful. His only pet, a Hamster by the name of

Fuzzy, never reacted any different than could be expected. And the

only reaction in mammals was his sister yelling about the awful stench

coming from the basement these last few weeks. David's mother had

agreed, but the family compromised and they would put up with it until

after the due date of his assignment.

Making his way upstairs, with the unstopped beaker, David grumbled

with disappointment that his "great" idea was not showing any results.

As he passed the breakfast nook in the kitchen, his sister broke his

thoughts, "What is that?" She asked while pointing directly at the

beaker.

"Toilet water." Meaning this batch was about to join the porcelain

toilet, as had the last several. He hadn't even looked towards his

sister as he walked by.

The light blue liquid disappeared down the toilet with a dismal flush.

David sighed and resigned himself to return to his simple lab in the

basement. When he reached the basement, Kerry his sister was there

nosing about. Something she never did, come into his space, she

always thought of him as childish and his experiments as "nerdy".

"Do you have any more of that smell?" He pulled a book from her

hands, annoyed with her.

"What smell?" The question puzzled him. He brushed by her to sit

back on his stool before the unorganized wooden table.

"That blue one you just had? I liked that one." She smiled and

brushed a blonde hair from her face. Though he thought her as

irritating, he could not help but noticed the attractive slim lines to

her face, the way the swell of her breasts pressed against her shirt,

or the way her jeans curved about her hips. But, as a brother he would

never admit this interest to anyone, especially to himself.

"That one? I thought it stunk worse that the previous two." His

sisters eyes twinkled. "I threw it all out." He turned about,

thinking that was the end of the conversation.

"Could you make some more Davy?"

Davy? Why was she so interested in some noxious fumes that he could

barely stand? "I suppose so. But why?" He noticed she was twirling

a lock of hair before her face, almost shyly. David was irritated at

his sisters strange behavior, as well as her invasion into his "lab".

"I kind of liked it. Maybe I will use it as perfume."

She's gotta be kidding?! No one would get within thirty feet of her.

"I need to get some work done Kerry. Get out of here!" His voice was

beginning to rise, expecting the same from his normally abrasive

sister. Normally, they could barely stand in the same room this long

without a loud argument erupting.

Surprisingly, she simply put on a pouty face and disappeared from the

basement, allowing her brother to have the last word. A rarity, the

David never enjoyed.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - II (Part 1)

"What is that smell?" David entered the kitchen just as his mother
was coming home from work and asked her query.

Kerry answered, "David's newest try. I kind of like this one don't

you?" He noticed his sister had changed into her night clothes

already, something she never did until minutes before going to bed.

Her long blonde hair was untidy and she looked like she had already

taken a shower.

"Oh yes. David", his mother smiled at him, "I don't know if you

succeeded this time but it does smell... different." Kerry nodded

enthusiastically. "Not a good, or bad, smell. Just different." She

hung up her coat and purse before helping out her daughter with

supper.

Still depressed from the failed experiments David snapped, "Well its

gone, I flushed it just like the rest." He sat at the table, mentally

tired from his hard work downstairs.

Kerry contributed, "He threw it all away. I asked him if he could

make more." The two ladies looked expectantly at him.

"That is a great idea, David why don't you make more of that batch?

What do you call it?" The two ladies looked expectantly at him.

The direction of the conversation surprised him, why did his sister
and mother not leave the topic alone. Besides the last liquid stunk

awfully, didn't they realize that. "Toilet Water", he responded

thinking of the only thing that came to him. It really didn't matter,

since he hadn't any more. "I don't have time to make more, I have to

try getting my lab right and I don't have many more ideas."

Only a few minutes later, supper was on the table. David ate

heartily, and didn't notice that his sister barely touched her food or

that no one was speaking. Mentally, the youth went over the last few

tries of his experiment, and was puzzled that his hypotheses had been

wrong to date. According to his own theories, a scent was possible

within the boundaries of the last few tries. Again, he was excited at

the usage of such a success on his part; help people stop smoking,

decrease hunger in overweight people, make violent offenders more

agreeable, etc.

He suddenly stopped counting money that he had yet to earn. Irritated

at his own fantasies and disgusted at his last few failed lab

attempts.

When finally David was finished his food, he looked up to find his

sister starring off into space, her hands below the table. While his

mother had unbuttoned the top of her blouse to gently scratch her

nails upon the skin of her upper chest. Her other hand absentmindedly

eating. Even though the two sets of clothes, the nipples of both

ladies was plainly seen poking through the fabric, which was so

evident that even the normally preoccupied teen noticed. Kerry was

obviously not wearing any bra beneath her nightshirt. And his

attractive slim mothers much larger breasts appeared to rise and fall

perceptibly with every breath she took.

"Mom?"

She shook her head, "Yes dear?" Kerry also returned to the

conversation, her face flush and her hands shaking slightly. She

looked at him peculiar.

"Are you okay?"

"Hum... definitely yes." Then giggled. A sound David had never heard

from his mother, she also blushed. "I was thinking that I want you to

make more `Toilet Water'." She took a bite of food. Kerry looked

expectantly at her younger brother.

"Maybe next week." He was very puzzled. "After I hand in my

experiment."

"Why so long?" Asked Kerry.

Before he could say anything, his mother interjected, "No that is

reasonable. After your due date then David."

The Sweet Smell of Lust - III (Part 1)

That very night, even before he fell asleep, David heard a noise. A

low moan coming from down the hall from his mothers room. At first he

tried to ignore it, then imagined she was simply having a dream. But,

ultimately he decided to see if she was all right. After the way the

two ladies of the household acted at supper, he wondered if they had

ate something rotten.

Outside his mothers door, he could hear the noise much easier. A low

moan that definitely came from his mother. She must be sick? In case

she was still asleep, David opened the door to her room slowly, only

enough to peek in.

His mother was alone. She lay in the middle of the bed, with the

covers up to her chin. Her legs were widely spread beneath the light

covering, and her knees bent. Between the gap of her legs, below her

stomach, her hands were moving beneath the bedspread. David's eyes

nearly popped when he realized his mother was masturbating.

Quickly closing the door in case she noticed her only son, he stood

trembling before his single parents room. He could still picture her

face as it was tightly clenched as if working mightily, which in a way

she was. The movements that he could only guess at, suggested his

mother had both her hands between her legs while her hips pressed

rhythmically upwards. The glistening of sweat upon her forehead her

tongue whipping out to lick her lips, flashed through his mind.

He was also amazed that he had a hard-on.

Quietly retreating, he stopped before Kerry's door and silently opened

it. At this point he was wondering why the two ladies were acting

differently this evening. His sister was not awake, yet neither was

she clothed.

Kerry lay naked upon her messy bed, a pillow stuffed between her legs,

and her back to the door. Only her white buttocks, and back, could be

seen. Quickly he closed the door to his sisters room.

The teen stood bewildered in the hallway for several minutes, the

sound of his mothers self pleasure getting louder. Why had they acted

different at supper? What changed that caused his mother to act so

brazenly before her children? Why had Kerry been uncharacteristically

docile with him? It didn't make sense to the youth.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - IV (Part 1)

The next day, everything was normal. So much so, that he sort of

missed the silent attention he was part of at supper the day before.

Kerry had screamed at him to get out of the bathroom, while his mother
scolded both for not getting along with sister.

It was at school, in his Biology class that a hypotheses came to him.

Why his mother and sister acted strangely yesterday? The "Toilet

Water"! Didn't they consistently bring up his experiment, and that

they wanted him to make more of the foul smelling liquid?

David's instructor said, "Some smells get different reactions to

different animals." David decided to make more!

Yet, why did his mother and sister display symptoms of sexual

heightened awareness from the smell? It must have set off some

reaction of its own in the chemistry of their bodies. And what did

they have in common? Their sex, of course! Fuzzy was a male hamster

and it was obvious that the small mammal was not affected by the

scent.

Three o'clock took forever to come around, but when it did David ran

home to start another batch of "Toilet Water".

The Sweet Smell of Lust - V (Part 1)

Since his mother had showed more outward signs of the sweet smell of

his experiment, David decided to test it out upon her first. He

resolved not to carry the experiment too far, if indeed it worked as

he thought, he would halt the experiment and then document his lab.

He would be done.

It was just before bedtime and Kerry was in bed, his mother sat down

in the family room reading. David sat down across from her, his

experiment newly unstopped and open to the air on a tray hidden next

to a pile of magazines. He feigned reading.

Only a few seconds after sitting, his mother began to shift about.

Seemingly to get comfortable.

Then she undid a few extra buttons of her blouse while licking her

lips continuously.

Looking over the edge of the book, nothing else seemed to happen for

several minutes, and David began to wonder if he was wrong about the

aroma of this experiment. Then she moaned.

It wasn't a tired, or content moan. But a moan that he had heard last

evening. And he saw that her eyes were closed, though she still had

the book up pretending to read.

"Would you like something from the kitchen mom?" David put down his

book and stood up.

"Hum?" She opened her eyes and looked her son up and down minutely.

"Yes. Something wet dear." The word "wet" was emphasized.

He left her alone for about two minutes, another of his tests. When he

returned things seemed normal until he looked about. Sitting upon the

carpet, partially tucked under the couch was a pair of panties, most

probably his mothers. Her blouse now looked wrinkled, while her skirt

was pulled up above her knees.

The awful stench was plainly in the air, and his mother finally asked,

"Did you make more `Toilet Water' honey?" She looked feverish.

"Yea. I left it down here somewhere. Your right the smell isn't so

bad, what do you think maybe I should try it on Fuzzy again?"

She licked her lips, "I like it." She looked about the room, the said

quickly, "Maybe you should go to bed baby?"

"I'm not tired yet."

"Well, why don't you go and read in your room?" She was shifting her

weight constantly now. "I'm going soon, I just wanted to finish this

chapter." David realized she wanted to be alone, and wondered if he

should let her.

He made a decision and stood. "Okay mom." He bent forward and kissed

her cheek which caused a violent spasm to run through her body. It

didn't look painful, rather it looked like she was trying to control

herself but was barely succeeding.

Leaving the family room, David only went so far that he could not be

seen. Almost as soon as he was out of sight, the familiar moaning

began again. This time accompanied by the springs of the couch, which

suggested his mother was repeating the sight he saw her do the night

before.

Again, his hard on reminded him that this was more than just an

experiment. Yet the young experimenter denied it to himself.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - VI (Part 1)

Since the next day was Saturday, David was working in his "lab" as

soon as he awoke. He found the evaporated beaker empty of "Toilet

Water" just where he left it. Evidence of his mothers self pleasure

was no where to be seen and neither was the discarded panties.

She hadn't come down for breakfast, but slept in until late in the

morning. And when she did awake, she purposely attempted to ignore

her son. Which he figured she did from embarrassment. So they both

went about there business for half the day. It was just early into the

afternoon when his mother came down into his "lab" while his sister
was at her field hockey practice.

"David, dear."

Looking up surprised, "Oh, hi mom."

She looked and sounded nervous, "I was wondering..."

"Yes?"

"...if you have any more `Toilet Water'?" She looked relieved that

she finally got the question out, but still would not meet her sons

eyes.

This question took the teen by surprise, the fact that his mother
appeared to enjoy the scent of his experiment, he would never have

guessed she would solicit him for it. Of course he had made a larger

batch for his experiment last night than what was actually used, but

was not sure if he should use it. He did grab a beaker from the shelf

and then look up at his mother.

"I have more, but I don't think I should let you have any." He felt

on unsure ground, since he was unsure how strongly she felt about his

experiment. Nor could he reveal to her, why he would not let her have

more of the liquid.

She looked desirable at the full beaker and licked her lips slowly.

"Yes that's it. David give it to me please." She attempted to look

stern at her only son, but he could see pleading in her eyes. "Listen

young man!" Uh, oh. "You will give me the `Toilet Water' this instant

or you're grounded for a week. Do you understand me?"

What was happening? His mother was never the stern one in the house,

nor had she ever spoken to him or Kerry in that voice either. A

defiance rose within, "No." She looked surprised. David was unsure

the scent was not causing any permanent damage to his mother, or

sister, and until he knew the extent of the liquid he did not want the

"Toilet Water" out of his controlled hands.

Something inside his mother changed, her eyes remained the same, but

she seemed to "soften". Her hand came down and rested upon his, the

other fell to his shoulder squeezing gently. She drew up close and

kissed him softly upon his brow then whispered into his ear, "Please

David." He didn't answer, but was only thinking of his experiment and

the actions it caused in the women of the house. Hoarsely, "I'll do

anything for you!"

Her emphasis on "anything" hadn't gotten by David. And for the first

time he realized what was going on, his own mother was trying to

seduce her son for more "Toilet Water". He felt a nervous shiver run

through him and he froze, never before had a woman proposition or

acted this way about him. Nor did he know how to handle it. Sure, he

had been excited after witnessing his mothers, and sisters, bodies.

But to actually think of a physical relationship with them never

crossed his mind.

His experiment had gotten out of control. His own mother was turning

into a addict for his lab attempt, and into a slut. David was more

than a little confused. He knew the right thing would be to destroy

the remaining "Water" and then rip apart his notes, but something

stopped him. Some inner voice or desire.

After the nervous silence, he could almost feel his mothers triumphant

smile beside him. "I just want a little bit baby." He hand moved down

from his shoulder to his strong hard chest. "I've seen you looking at

me, I'm not blind. What that delicious smell does to me. How it

makes me feel. You can see what I'm going through right darling?"

Her hand rubbing his stomach gently as he still sat frozen at his

bench facing his mother. "I know I am still attractive. Do you think

I am pretty David?" She only paused briefly, but he didn't answer.

His mothers hand slide down past his belt to firmly grasp his crotch,

she could feel his organ growing beneath the denim of his jeans. "What

you do not realize... is what I am willing to do for more `Toilet

Water'." This time she took her other hand and pulled his towards

her, she turned his palm until it was facing upwards then immediately

pressed it upwards into the crotch of her shorts. She also gave him a

meaningful squeeze, his cock painfully confined inside his pants. "Is

there anything you would like me to do for you baby?" She licked his

ear slowly and seductively and wiggled her hips grinding her covered

sex into his hand.

"Mother?!" He sat frozen, but realized he would do anything for this

woman now. His lack of experience with women did not help him with

this situation. Nor help him realize he held the "upper hand" and not

her.

"Let me have some David, please!" He reluctantly pulled his hand from

between her legs and found a small vial and filled it with the foul

smelling liquid she so desired. When he unstopped the beaker, his

mother inhaled hugely and then sighed content. "Yes baby...", both her

hands fumbled with his jeans, "if you make your mother happy,

she'll...", her hands finally opened his pants and she pulled his rock

hard cock from its confines, "...make you happy." She immediately

dropped to her knees before him and pressed her face downwards his

cock sunk to the root inside her mouth. She moaned even as her face

began to move up and down, sucking him hungrily.

David gasped surprised, and excited beyond belief. A part of him felt

this was wrong, that it was not his mother sucking his cock, but his

experiment that had somehow altered her actions. Yet, another part of

him, the teenage hormones, the animal passion, the lustful bastard

within him won. He reached out and held his mothers head, not wanting

her to stop the delicious sensation. Though she showed no inclination

at stopping. In fact she was sucking with a passion that suggested

she needed this as much as David now did.

When his orgasm exploded, all his resistance and energy went with it.

His mother didn't miss a drop, instead swallowed loudly and hungrily.

It felt like an eternity when she finally stood, whipped her mouth

with the back of her hand, then grabbed for the small stopped vial and

quickly exited the small room. David sat gasping, contemplating his

thoughts and feelings of what just happened.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - VII (Part 1)

Perhaps an hour later, David stood before his mothers bedroom door.

Alone in the large house, David earlier could hear the sound of his

mothers pleasure. Her sobs, cries of passion, the squeaky bed, and

her loud sighs of pleasure. When finally the house was silent he

found himself upstairs.

The teen didn't knock upon the closed door, but he attempted to be

quiet, as he opened it slowly. Laying naked beneath a thin sheet upon

the bed was his mother. Her skin was glistening with sweat, her body

still quivered, and her eyes were starring up at the ceiling. David

also noticed several smells, his foul smelling experiment was obvious

as was the empty vial next to her bed, the smell of his mothers sweat,

but the smell that he could not place right away was the smell of his

mothers sexual heat and passion. Standing there in the doorway

looking at her, he again felt his penis rise.

The almost forty year-old woman slowly looked down from the ceiling

towards the foot of her bed. She looked her son over, her eyes no

longer had that peculiar look to them any longer, including the

obvious bulge in his pants. David watched as her eyes again returned

to his, then begin to water. She began to cry. A fountain of tears

flowed down her cheeks as she threw an oblong object previously hidden
from his sight over to the corner. She tiredly rolled onto her side,

making sure her nakedness was fully covered from her son.

David looked at what she had thrown, it was a rubber cock, still

glistening with her wet juices. Feeling horny, David didn't move for

several minutes until guilt took over his previous emotions. Taking

his eyes from the bed and his mother, he took a few steps over to the

window and opened it wide, allowing fresh air to clean the large room.

Then he quickly departed, closing the door behind him. The sounds of

his mothers sobs replacing the passionate sounds from earlier.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - VIII (Part 1)

Two days went by, and David again threw himself into more attempts at

his lab experiments. He hide the "Toilet Water" behind some books in

his "lab", not wanting anyone to get their hands upon the dangerous

liquid. After the other days events, his guilt had not allowed him to

consider any further attempts upon the women in his household. He

loved them too much to make them do something they did not want to do.

His mother's tears were proof of that.

Lucky for David, his mother had not spoken about Saturdays incident in

his "lab". Nor had she said anything about the light blue liquid. He

felt a tension between them, but he was happy that she treated him

exactly the same as she always had. At least until her actions became

controlled by the "Toilet Water".

His sister was the only one to bring up his experiments, she inquired

into how long it was before his assignment was finished so he could

make more "Water"? His answer, since his mother had not been around

was a shrug then "soon". She smiled happily then left him alone - he

knew that Kerry's desires were fueled by the hungry for the "Water"

and was not acting herself. After she left, he resolved to never allow

either woman access to the liquid, under any circumstance.

A circumstance happened just Tuesday morning, hours before David's

alarm even went off. A voice in his ear awoke him, "Wake up darling."

In seconds, he realized his mother was in his bed, underneath the

covers with him. Her mouth almost against his ear, her right hand

already measuring his sex outside his underwear. He realized she was

wearing a silk nightgown, one that he knew she owned but had never

seen worn before. Probably because it was practically see through,

and his normally shy mother would never expose herself in front of her

children. Until "Toilet Water" that is.

"I know your awake." She squeezed his cock, "Your mommy wants more of

that wonderful scent." She quickly tongued his ear. "And you know

your mom will do anything to get it." Her hand drew out his penis,

and began to stroke it even as her pelvis began to press into her

son's hip. "Mommy knows what little boys want!" The wet tongue slid

down his neck.

David could feel the warmth of her crotch through the silk against his

hip. Still in a half sleep stage and against his better judgment, his

buttocks began to press up and down, his cock sliding back and forth

in his mothers hand. Yet, he was successful in muttering, "No",

several times.

"No?" She drew away from him, until she only lay next to him. Still

whispering, "Will you give me more `Toilet Water' David?"

She sounded like a little girl to David, wanting something she already

knew was bad for her. "Go back to bed mom." Those simple words were

very hard for him to say.

"Didn't you like my blowjob?" It was a rhetorical question - the

amount of sperm that shot out of him was proof enough to both. "I'll

do anything David." He was beginning to understand just how strong

those words were when the topic of his experiment came into play. "I

know you want me, I can see it in your eyes. Don't all young men want

to fuck their mother?" She quickly got off the bed and stood next to

it for several seconds. As if contemplating her next move.

David was about to again tell her to go to bed, that she was not going

to get any "Water" this evening. When she quickly pulled the sexy

silk nightgown up over her head and let it drop to the ground behind

her.

Never before had he seen a frontal nude woman before, except in

pictures. And even though his mom was thirty eight years-old she had

a body on par with those young girls in magazines. She stood with the

outside light framing her body, she looked angelic and David felt his

desire rising and his ethical beliefs drop.

She didn't need to say anything, instead his mother began to roam her

own body with her hands. She began to put on a show for her only son.

To seduce him. To get what she wanted, "Toilet Water". She was the

addict and her son was the only outlet to this addiction.

David sat up in bed, near the edge, watching as his mom manipulated

her large breasts and the dark nipples. "Mom...?!" She reached out to

him, and drew his head to her bosom.

The nipple entered his mouth and he suckled from some natural

instinct. He could taste her salty skin, her stall perfume, and even

her sweat. David quivered in uncontrolled delight as the other breast
was also presented to him. He brought up his hands to hold her heavy

breasts up and together, while her hands simply stroked his forehead

and hair lovingly.

When finally David sat back, taking his hands from her warm body, and

could see the glistening saliva he left upon her pale fleshy breasts.

His mother slowly turned until her back was to her son, then she bent

over at the waist. One of her hands reached around and pulled a cheek

apart, while the other reached between her legs to spread her vaginal

lips. Her exposure was complete, David could see everything even in

the dim light.

David extended one hand and touched his mothers warm smooth rear

thigh. She didn't move as his hand moved to her buttock, and pulled

it apart from the other. For almost a minute, he viewed the dimly lit

blonde pussy and asshole.

As he watched, the hand that was holding her outer vaginal lips apart

moved and he watched as two fingers disappeared into her sex. His

mother jack-hammered them into herself for several seconds then

brought them out. She stood back up and turned about facing her only

son, the slimy fingers were offered to him.

As he opened his lips, the juice covered fingers entered his mouth and

he could taste the peculiar, and sensual taste of his mothers sex.

She finally spoke after her long silence, "You can have this anytime

dear." He hungrily sucked her fingers clean. "But you know what I

want."

It was simply too much for the teenager, a naked woman offering

herself to him was a dream come true. Even if it was his mother, his

hormones now controlled his actions. Reaching out, mesmerized by her

body, David slid a hand between her legs to cup her sex. He could

feel the moisture there, as well as the furry bush covering a warm

smooth slit.

The attractive woman lifted one leg to rest her foot on the edge of

the bed, giving more access for her son. "You like mommy's pussy
baby?"

The vaginal slit seemed to lead him to the wonderful hole he had only

heard about. His middle finger entered her easily, all the way to the

knuckle. She moaned lightly and moved her hips forward to allow

easier access.

"Go get the "Toilet Water" and I'll let you fuck me dear." She smiled

uncertainly at her only son. He simply looked up and then quickly ran

from the room, his pussy juice covered finger already in this mouth.

It took only a few moments for him to return with another small vial

with a thimble full of his experiment. His mother spoke rapidly,

anxiously, "Open it David, hurry!" He did, then set it down next to

the bed.

David's mother inhaled deeply, taking in all the musk. He watched as

she began to tremble and concentrate upon the foul stench he could

smell. As was expected, David watched as his mother began to show

signs of her excitement. The hardened nipples, the tongue upon the

lips, the hard eyes, and the familiar scent of his mothers enjoyment.

She turned her head towards her only son and looked down at his cock.

Feverishly she jumped for the bed and stood next to it, bent over at

the waist, her bottom raised for her sons enjoyment. His mom was

breathing extremely fast, and could not wait for some pleasure and

began to use her own hand upon her wet sex.

David could barely hear her mumble as she masturbated before him, "I

don't care anymore I just want your cock baby!" And, "Fuck me David,

use me as your whore!"

As he stepped forward, she held open her vaginal lips to guide him to

the pleasure hole he sought. His hips shot forward and he found

himself inside his mothers sex. The squeals of delight she made was

proof enough that she enjoyed him inside her most private of places.

She screamed into a pillow, as her first orgasm came upon her. David

began to drive his hips back and forth, while looking down to watch

his hard prick slide in and out of the sloppy wet hole below the pale

cheeks.

It took only a few quick moments for his orgasm to begin, and he

flooded his mothers love channel with an abundant amount of

seed. While she ground her hips with enjoyment, and moaned out her

pleasure as she also felt the sperm enter deep inside her.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - IX (Part 1)

David awoke by the sharp noise of his alarm clock, then sat up to

contemplate what had happened to him the night before. Next to the bed

was the empty vial of "Toilet Water", and on the floor was the silk

nightgown his mother had worn. It was unmistakable what had happened

here not long ago.

Yet he was alone.

Something inside of him had changed, he knew it. The respectable

teenager whose morals included the acceptance of incest as a sin was

disintegrated. His morning hard on pulsated with the immoral thoughts

of his mothers sexy body. He also knew his mind wasn't altered by any

drug, but rather he had awakened to a new pleasure - sex.

Rising, he found his sister already hogging the bathroom and a note

from his mother saying she left for work early. After a shower, the

young man dressed and went down feeling superb.

If not for his sisters normal grumpy reaction to him first thing then,

he would have had a great day. Instead her initial snarl of

discontent was enough for him to smile a knowing smile and tell her to

"fuck off". She practically screamed for several moments at him.

Then he simply said, "I made more `Toilet Water'."

David received the reaction he was hoping for, his sister suddenly

became docile and smiled warmly at her younger brother. "Why didn't

you tell me David?"

"I just did."

"Silly! Where is it?" She asked, he eyes huge and expectant.

"I can get it - but are you sure you want me to?" He looked at the

clock, he had to leave within thirty minutes.

Kerry nodded earnestly. "Okay, but come down to the family room with

me." He disappeared into his lab and poured another small vial. His

sister was waiting for him as he had asked, and he could see that she

could hardly wait for the "Water" scent.

Unstopping it, he set it down on the coffee table, realizing that this

was the same place he had tested his mother with the liquid. As he

watched, Kerry's body relaxed and she lay back upon the couch - a huge

smile upon her face. Soon she began to wiggle her thighs together,

and giggle softly to herself. Nervously she looked over at her "baby"

brother.

David knelt next to his sexy slim sister and placed a hand upon her

breasts. Smaller than their mothers, it was also firm and the nipple

extremely pointy as it dug into his hand. "What are you doing David?"

She asked, while having trouble getting the words out as she breathed

hard. Yet she didn't remove his hand and just watched him with a

peculiar look in her eye.

"I'm playing with your boob. I have always liked your boobs Kerry."

He placed the other hand upon the free breast. She wiggled about

while looking nervously at her brother. He could tell she was enjoying

the attention yet knew she should not let her younger brother fondle

her chest - she just could not do anything about it.

"Please stop David!" She sounded very serious, yet did not make a

move to stop him. Nor did he intend to stop, the experiment continued

to heighten his sisters sexual senses and ultimately his own. Only

hours before his mother had taken his virginity. Applying his lust

towards Kerry did not seem wrong in any way. "You don't realize what

you are doing." Her lower half was wiggling about.

"Take off all your clothes sis." He said it simply and then sat back

taking his hands from her.

Kerry stared at him for several seconds, startled at her brothers

words. "No Davy its wrong!"

"If you ever want more `Toilet Water' you will do everything I say."

He spoke rather abruptly. And since Kerry's body was sexually excited

beyond her own control she had no choice but to accept her brothers

orders. Even if, under normal circumstances, she would have rebelled.

Kerry groaned in submission and then began to tear off her jeans,

T-shirt, and socks. Breathing hard, with only her bra and panties,

watching and waiting for her brother's interest she did not even

realize her left hand was gently rubbing outside her covered crotch.

"Don't forget your underwear. How am I going to fuck you if you are

wearing clothes?" Kerry had been reaching for the panties when she

heard the last sentence. Her face showed shock, but her hands

trembled and she scrambled to pull her cotton briefs off. Giggling she

rolled over onto her stomach and wiggled her pert young buttocks at

her younger brother.

David recognized his sisters nervousness and playfulness. He

concluded this strange reaction simply from her age. mother had been

older, more secure about her body and its responses. While his sister
was youthful and still in the learning stages for her own sexual

awareness.

Her sexual scent was strong in the large room, even overpowering the

rancid odor of his experiment. Unzipping his jeans, as well as

walking about the couch, behind his sister, he sharply slapped her

white buttock. She jumped and giggled nervously, then a long drawn

out moan escaped her lips. Surprised at this response, he again

spanked her bottom, enjoying the sight of her youthful buttocks

clenching and jerking. "Dave please!" Again the hand came down, and

again. Each time was even harder than the last. He realized he loved

spanking his sister, taking out the years of arguments and sibling

fights with every blow.

Gone was the giggling, now she was just rotating her hips while

pressing her pelvis against the hard cushion of the couch, her moaning

constant. It was obvious, she was close to orgasm. "Please what?"

David finally asked, baiting her.

Attempting to entice her brother she wiggled her buttocks up off the

couch in back and forth motions, "Hurry, put it in!" He hadn't moved,

but just enjoyed the sight of her blazing red ass that he had caused.

"Please David, fuck me!" She almost screamed out.

With that, he straddled his sisters thighs and used one hand to aim

his cock and the other to pull apart one of her ass cheeks. It took a

few long seconds until his aim found the overheated sexual hole that

easily accommodated him. "Thank you David! Thank you..." She sighed

very loudly then began to rotate her hips, anxious for his strokes.

Kerry, quickly began to scream out. Her body loosing all control and

trembling violently beneath him. She broke out in a sweat and

attempted to clench her muscles, as the orgasm overcame her senses.

The visually stunning orgasm also started her brothers. He pulled his

rock hard cock out of her and then placed it between the strong cheeks

of her ass. The damp valley was firmly pressed together but offered a

wonderful alternative to finish his strokes. His cock rode along her

ass crack for a few more seconds before he felt the explosion exit

from his body. Looking down he watched as his seed coated much of his

sisters tail bone and upper crack.

She moaned contentedly, happy to feel his hot sperm upon her skin.

Slowly standing up and stuffing his penis back into his pants he said,

"Your going to be late for school if you don't hurry up." He quickly

turned and began to leave her laying there.

"If you want, I'll be waiting here when you get back?" He turned

about to see her looking past her sweaty shoulder. "I'd like to do

this more often. How much more `Toilet Water' do you have?" He simply

smiled as a response then turned about and departed.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - X (Part 1)

David's day was spent reminiscing about the last few weeks with his

mother and sister. The differences in both, the similarities. For

instance; Kerry had a strong taunt body while his mother's was soft

and curvy, then the taste of his mothers sexual juices were stronger

and his sisters had a sharp taste, also the differences in the feel of

his cock inside of his mother was juicier while Kerry had a tight hot

pussy. The day disappeared in these memories.

After getting home, he settled down to distribute the `Toilet Water'

to several tumble sized vials. He was convinced his experiment was

successful. So much so, that he wanted to enjoy the benefits of his

success.

The door opened and closed upstairs, and he heard the sound of his

mothers heels upon the hardwood floor of the kitchen. "Mom would you

come down here please?" He shouted up, then quickly hide the vials

about his lab in different places. He listened as the heels descended

the stairs towards him.

Without a word, his mom entered his small lab and stood before him,

her eyes looking everywhere but at her son. David openly enjoyed the

sight of his attractive mother in her "power" suit. The blazer and

skirt, the white silky blouse, white nylons and heels. She looked

professional and sexy, he realized. Also nervous.

Reaching out he placed his hand directly upon her buttock and rolled

it about her backside. She still didn't move. Ignoring her quiet

nervousness, he reached out and lifted her skirt up to her waist. The

white nylons covered her shapely backside and long legs all the way to

her waist. "I enjoyed last night mom." She still didn't move or say

anything. "I especially enjoyed watching you finger your wet pussy."

It looked like she was about to say something but bit her bottom lip

instead. "I would like to watch you rub your juicy cunt right now."

The words made her jerk her head back, and she tensed up her buttocks

beneath her sons hands.

He knew of her reluctance, the same emotion she showed the last time

he confronted her after an encounter. He also didn't care, his

desires controlled his emotions now. And he knew what controlled his

mother - his successful experiment. As long as there was a chance for

another "fix" she would put up with his attentions. And when the urge

was becoming unbearable, she used any means at her disposal to get it.

A hand came up before her to wave a small vial of light blue liquid.

His mother licked her lips hungrily and starred right at the liquid as

her son's other hand groped her shapely ass. He could tell all her

resistance suddenly disappeared after she saw the liquid. "I'll play

with myself anytime you want darling, but wouldn't you rather I suck

you off?" She turned towards him, using a sexy look that had worked

the night before.

Smiling in triumph at his own mother, "I don't' like your underwear

mom, take them off." She reached down and hooked both thumbs into the

elastic waist band for her nylons. While looking into her sons eyes,

she pushed then down and stepped out of her undergarments quickly.

Then still holding her skirt up to her waist, her hairy sex visible to

her son's lecherous eyes, "Where do you want me dear?" She smiled

seductively.

Handing her the vial, "Here mom. Go upstairs and get ready for me."

She quickly grabbed the small vial and then nodded happily at her son

before rushing out of his lab and up the stairs. David felt his

hardened cock press painfully against his jeans, then smiled knowing

his loving mom would handle it for him.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - XI (Part 1)

To put it bluntly, David had sex at least twice a day. With his

mother and sometimes with his sister. Anytime he wished, anywhere he

wished. Though he would never tell Kerry, he desired the incestuous

relationship with his mother more. She was easily more experienced,

but mostly because it seemed "wrong".

In only a few short days, they had become his sexual playmates. Living

only to please him so they can enjoy the scent of "Toilet Water".

Kerry knew that her brother was fucking their mom, but didn't seem to

care. While David's mother did not know about her daughter acting in

the same way she herself was doing.

David planned on changing that.

Opening a large dosage of "Toilet Water", his sister couldn't keep her

hands away from her sex. And though she attempted to entice her

brother to fuck her, he only watched for a few moments before leaving

her alone. Kerry moaned loudly but then put all her energy into her

cunt, and the huge sexual ache between her legs.

His mother awoke with her son's words, "Wake up mother." She realized

the covers were pulled back and her nightgown pulled up to her waist.

Then she smelled the scent, faintly.

Standing at the foot of the bed, David stood naked looking down at his

attractive mother. She smiled lovely at him before spreading her legs

and then using her hands to manipulate her sex. She did this both

from desire, as well as the knowledge her son loved to watch her play

with herself.

This show lasted for a few moments, until David saw, smelt, and heard

the juice from his mothers sex. Her body was reacting as normal, in

only a few moments she would be beyond control of her own body. "Get

up mom." She scrambled to comply. "And take that gown off, I want you

naked." She stood before her son naked, not even thinking about what

he had in store for her, just wondering where the wonderful scent of

the "Toilet Water" was coming from. One hand held her breast and the

other cupping her sex, they both helped her with the sexual urges she

felt and could not control.

"Come with me." She followed her son out of her room and down the

hallway. Before she even realized where she was, David had opened

Kerry's bedroom door and pushed his mom before him just inside the

room.

Masturbating furiously was Kerry, the strong scent of pussy and

"Water" powerful and obvious in the air. David watched as the horror

and understanding came to his mother, it was written upon her face.

He also saw, that she could not stop playing with herself, even

standing watching her own daughter finger her sloppy cunt. The

experiment took hold of the middle aged woman and she did not resist

in any way, though her face revealed otherwise.

He held his mothers breasts in his young strong hands, enjoying the

texture and feel of her bountiful breasts. "Kerry?"

"Davy!" She opened her eyes, and after a brief glance of recognition

at her naked mother looked right into David's. "I need it baby

brother, come fuck me!" She whined and began to pump two fingers into

herself with earnest, obviously wanting to please her brother. She

also knew he liked to watch her masturbate. "I'm wet and ready for

your hard cock."

David's mom could not take her eyes from her daughter, and the words

from her mouth astonished and excited her. He knew she was almost at

the point where she would not be able to control herself until she had

at least one orgasm.

"Mom loves to use her mouth, don't you mom?" She simply ground her

ample buttocks into her son's hard on. Kerry again looked at her mom
with a new interest. Taking one hand from her breast, David used it

to open her mouth. "Stick your tongue out mother, show Kerry what

your going to fuck her with." His mother complied.

Kerry groaned in anticipation. "Please mommy, fuck my pussy!" The

teenager opened the outer lips of her sex allowing the two in the

doorway an excellent view of her inner wet pink lips and hole. David

had guessed correctly, that his sister did not care where her orgasm

came from.

David felt his mom shudder also in anticipation. "Go ahead mom, I

think you know what to do." He pushed her forward. "Fuck our mothers

face Kerry and maybe I'll fuck your face at the same time." His mom
knelt on the bed, her face quickly pressed between the youthful thighs

and Kerry's response told him that the tongue was inside his sister.

His moms head bobbed up and down as she tongue fucked her daughter
even while her bottom was almost straight up. David could see that she

was still fingering her own vagina, unable to control her urges even

now.

Kneeling next to his sister, he guided her face towards his cock, and

she eagerly took him in. The sight was fabulous and David moaned in

enjoyment - this little play that he had put together. Holding his

sisters head still, the youth began to slam in and out of her tiny

mouth. He heard Kerry gag several times when his dick was deeply

embedded down the back of her throat, but it still seemed to turn the

girl on. Even while bobbing her face between Kerry's thighs, his mom
watched yearningly at her son fuck her daughters mouth. Perhaps she

wished it was she laying there.

Pulling from the wet mouth, David crawled about behind his mother.

She pulled apart her vagina to facilitate her son's access, while

wiggling her buttocks about enticingly. "What a wonderful sight

mother." David ran a single finger down the length of her ass crack

all the way past her flowered open wet vagina. He moved it back

upwards. "I wonder what it would be like to fuck you here?!" He

pressed the digit firmly into her rectum until the nail disappeared.

The youth bent forward and pressed his face into his moms crack, his

tongue finding her sweaty anus. She groaned out when his tongue slide

into her asshole, "Not there darling, in my cunt." She had returned

two fingers to her hole.

Her son took his face from behind her, "Have you ever been fucked in

the ass mom?"

"N... no."

"Well I'm going to fuck your ass. I'm going to take your virginity

like you took mine." Quickly the youth sat back onto his heels, and

aimed his saliva covered cock at the dark pink anal hole. The blunt

end entered with much resistance, until the head slipped past the

rectal ring and the shaft easily entered until he was embedded all the

way inside his moms bowels. "Fuck, your ass's tight!"

"Aggrhhh!" His mom could no longer continue with her mouth work and

simply moaned loudly. David thought she may have even orgasmed.

Kerry looked deliriously at the sight between her legs, her baby

brother had his cock inside their mom's wide ass, in her asshole. The

thought was turned her on deliciously and she crawled out from under

her mom. Laying practically upon her moms back, Kerry had her face

but six inches from the invaded bum, her brother slowly fucking the

tight cavity which clung to the sides of his hard cock.

The young woman quickly rolled off her mom and knelt next to her, she

want the same. Using her hands, she pulled apart the cheeks of her

ass and then said in a girlish voice, "Davy? Fuck my asshole too!"

The youth simply grinned then pulled out, with a slit pop, from the

tight confines of his moms butt hole. Quickly scurrying behind his

sister, he forced the head of his slimy cock into her asshole. She

groaned loudly from the pleasurable pain.

The "Toilet Water" controlled the actions of the two overheated women.

So much so that Kerry's perverse attraction to the sight of her

mother's sodomy caused a quick succession of orgasms to rocket through

her body. She practically convulsed for two minutes before collapsing

unable to move or say anything.

David pulled out from his sisters asshole, and saw that his mom was

still in the position he had left her in, but had two fingers again

inside her vagina. The woman could not get enough. David again knelt

behind his mom and aimed his cock back into the stretched anal hole.

"Thank god David!" She pressed back desperately when he again drove

his penis home.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - XII (Part 1)

David's home life had become every teenage boy's fantasy. To screw

two attractive women at his discretion. In fact, his newest interest

was to watch his mother and sister eat the others pussy. This was

often a preliminary to his joining in. And as long as he had "Toilet

Water" about to reward the ladies, before or after the sexual session,

there was little he could not do with their lovely bodies.

About the house, the two women wore skimpy whorish clothing or

nothing. The two sets of breasts were never held by a bra, and the

only type of panty allowed to be worn was a skimpy high on the hips

bikini type. Outside the house, both were allowed to act and dress

"normal". Yet, a firm warning by David, telling his mom and sister
that if they showed their any interest in another man, besides

himself, they would never smell the orgasm inducing scent again. He

threatened them by the simple fact that they could not control

themselves when under the influence, and someone else may take

advantage of this fact. The ladies became slaves to their own

heightened desires.

Mrs. Wilson was David's next attempt at control. The forty year-old

science teacher expected an assignment by her students, entries for

the lab that was due. When the teenager turned in a thimble sized

vial with light blue liquid and the twenty page document, the other

students in the class laughed. The minuscule size of the result of

week's of work came in such a small container, while others had to set

up complex exhibits. And David's teacher raised her eye brows when

she held the experiment.

David knew his experiment worked. Yet, others would also agree it was

an immoral drug that must be banned. Also, the addicted ladies of his

own household would be obvious under any scrutiny by authorities.

David would be held accountable, and he didn't hold any illusions to

the end result of that path.

Mrs. Wilson was a handsome, if not beautiful, woman. She always wore

her wire rimmed eye glasses, had her graying hair pulled back in a

bun, wore loose conservative clothing, and rarely showed any emotion

except at the brilliance of science - her first passion. She had been

married for twenty years, and had two daughters. David knew little

else about the women, other than that.

It usually took a week for any experiments to be marked and returned,

but it was only two days later that David knew she had "marked" his.

Nothing was obvious, but Mrs. Wilson had a peculiar look in her eyes.

"David may I talk to you after classes please?" He nodded in

agreement, anxious to resolve this newest test.

Only hours later, "David, I must commend you on a successful

experiment. It appears you did a comprehensive and in-depth analysis

of her hypothesis and ultimately your results." He sat in the front

row, and simply nodded, letting her take the initiative. "Yet, I

don't know how I can recommend you represent our school at the science

fair next month."

Feigning surprise, "Oh, way?"

"Ah...", she shifted uncontrollably, "well the lasting effects and the

end result of your experiment would be unprofessional to include with

the others."

"What affects are those Mrs. Wilson, my lab experiments showed it

controlled mammals wonderfully?"

"Yes, I'm sure it did." She rearranged the papers on her desk. "You

mention, only in passing, the heightened effect it had on your

animals?" He had never called his mammals, "animals", his mom and

sister deserved more respect that At the same time, he had never let

on in his experiment that a human was used. Again he nodded,

unsuccessfully hiding his smile. "Last night when I marked it..."

"Excuse me. Where did you mark it Mrs. Wilson?"

"In the teachers lounge. Anyway, as I was saying, last night I

noticed the affect on myself." She nervously cleared her throat.

Pretending surprise, David asked, "You mean, the smell excited you?"

She ignored the question. "And with this side affect, it would be

unseemingly to include your work with the others." She looked at him

sheepishly. After a few awkward seconds, after it was obvious David

wasn't about to say anything she continued with the main purpose of

this meeting. "There was so little, and it evaporated extremely

quickly, I had little time to test your experiment. Could you submit

more?"

He allowed the question to hang in the air for a few awkward seconds.

"Yes. In fact I have another vial with me." He pulled it from his

shoulder bag, which he had been carrying since handing in his

experiment. David saw the hungry look in his instructor's eyes. He

opened the vial and set it down on the desk before him.

Mrs. Wilson attempted to act normal, yet David could see the familiar

effect take hold of her. When it was obvious her self control was

teetering towards her sexual hunger, he spoke up again. "I was

wondering Mrs. Wilson, did you have to masturbate last night?" He

held her look expectantly.

A look of anger crossed her face, and then embarrassment. Mrs. Wilson

turned deep red then spoke softly, "I don't see how that is relevant."

"Then you don't have your hand between your legs right now?" David had

seen the familiar movements behind the desk, and realized her body

language spoke volumes. "Did you feel better after you fingered your

pussy last night, or did you have to go home and have sex with your

husband?"

She blurted out, anxious to succeed on his mistake, "My husband was

out of town last night."

"Then you must have fingered yourself again?" The noise of her juicy

sex was now obvious in the classroom, and other than the fact she was

hidden behind the desk - Mrs. Wilson didn't attempt to hid the

obvious. She simply was not able to control herself.

"Actually I had to do it two more times." She was becoming indignant.

David stood up and walked to the front of the classroom. His teacher

looked extremely nervous the closer he came. "I like to watch women

play with themselves." She closed her eyes and moved her second hand

down between her legs. "In fact my mother becomes an animal when she

gets like this." Mrs. Wilson groaned, and then worked even harder on

her masturbation. Obviously the incestuous and immoral sex talk was

exciting her. "Last night it I had to fuck her twice before she was

satisfied."

She gritted her teeth then gasped, "I'm going to come!"

Bending behind his instructor, he placed his mouth next to her ear and

whispered, "This morning, mother rewarded my efforts by sucking me

off." Mrs. Wilson grunted and then stiffened noticeably. The sweat

upon her brow and the exhausted look in her eye was the after effects

of her orgasm.

David pulled his teachers chair out from her desk, and saw that

Mrs. Wilson had pulled her conservative skirt up to her waist and

pushed her nylons and panties down to her knees. Both her hands

covered her crotch, yet the smell drifted up to the teens nose - her

vaginal secretions. The teen stood before his tired instructor

smiling.

She knew what there was no pretense now, she also knew the extent of

the "Toilet Water" and how much it would change her personality and

outlook. "Okay, what do you want David?"

"You. Oh, and a good mark in this course." He laughed softly.

Her exhaustion was already wearing off and was being replaced by the

power of the still prevalent scent. Taking a damp hand from between

her thighs she pulled up her blouse and bra showing a single pale

teat. The other hand spread the lips of her vagina while the knees

spread as far apart as the seat would allow. Nothing was now hidden
from the youth. "Is there anything you want right now?" The tinkle

in her eye spoke volumes. Though she had much to learn about being

seductive.

Laughing to himself, at his triumph, "Okay get up and bend over the

desk." She rushed to comply.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - XIII (Part 1)

The other conquest for David was the hottest looking girl in the

school. She was a tall brunette that had a perfect figure and

beautiful face. Many of the other girls envied and were jealous of

her, while others outright hated the teen. The guys lusted and often

fantasized about the girl, but unless you came from a rich family and

drove a hot sports car, the girl would never even look twice.

She was also two years older than David, a senior. Leaving an

expensive bottle of perfume and an anonymous note in her locker seemed

to be a brilliant idea. Especially to David, since the girls vanity

and self righteousness would force her to flaunt and use the perfume.

Except, it wasn't perfume at all, but "Toilet Water", enough for two

thimble sized applications.

After a few days, the teens normal cold and aloof attitude changed.

She looked tired, desperate and hungry. No one really noticed, other

than a few of her closest friends, but they hadn't a need to say

anything.

David asked Mrs. Wilson to request a meeting with Virginia after

school several days later. He thought she had been forced to wait

long enough. His Chemistry teacher didn't care what was planned, just

that this occasion would promise more of his experiment for her

enjoyment. Nothing else mattered.

When Virginia finally entered the classroom, only a few moments late.

She found an underclassman, whom she didn't even know, seated behind

the teachers desk. "Hi. Is Mrs. Wilson here?" Nodding in agreement,

he waved her in. "Well," she snapped at him, "where is she?"

Pulling back the chair, Virginia saw the instructors head bobbing

before the scrawny youth. It was obvious, if not hard to believe,

what was going on. He placed a hand on the back of her tightly bound

hair and helped the middle-aged woman keep the pace. "As you can see

she is a bit busy right now." It looked like Virginia was about to run

out of the room. "Did you like the gift I sent you?" That halted her

right in her tracks.

After a few seconds of silence, which the beautiful teen was facing

the door uncertain of the next few moments, but unable to leave. "I

have more. Much more. At least for my friends."

Virginia turned about and attempted to ignore the head in his lap

while turning on her incredible charm. "It was very nice of you to

send me..."

"Ahh... god, I'm going to come soon!" He looked up in amusement at

the teen before him. "I don't have the patience to play any games

with you Virginia. In fact, I would like you to be my girlfriend?"

The repulsion on her face was obvious. "You can't be serious?"

"I can, and I am." He placed a small stopped vial upon the desk

before him, then pulled the lid from it. Virginia's eyes blazed at

the light blue liquid, her desire obvious. "If you want that,"

pointing at the vial, "then you have until I come into Mrs. Wilson's

sweet mouth to get over here and replace her. If you don't then you

will never get any more `perfume'."

Virginia spun about and opened the door to leave. That's where she

stopped, waited and thought, before turning and coming about the desk.

Still acting haughty, the youth knelt down and bent between David's

legs.

He pulled his frantically sucking teacher from his lap, using her

hair. Seconds later, Virginia replaced Mrs. Wilson and was sucking
David's cock with less enthusiasm. He grabbed the back of the pretty

brunette head and forced her to speed up the tempo, her skill was less

than adequate. If not for his instructors earlier efforts, it would

have taken a very long time to come.

Holding her face against his crotch, he felt the jerks and spasms of

his penis as it shot the sperm into the cheerleaders mouth. She gagged

and coughed even while the head of his cock was deep in her throat.

Behind Virginia, Mrs. Wilson gasped and David watched as she finished

herself with her own hand - the skirt pulled up to her waist.

He pulled the pretty face from his lap, and noticed with amusement

that a large drop of sperm was attached to her lower lip. "That was

adequate, now go help Mrs. Wilson". He pushed her about towards the

sitting teacher. "Go ahead, eat her out!" Virginia made less fuss

about this assignment than her previous one, and quickly dived into

her work.

Mrs. Wilson cried out in enjoyment and pleasure. "My god! Thank you

David, thank you!"

David found himself a girlfriend.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XIV (Part 1)

It was Saturday morning. David awoke refreshed and pleased with the

last few weeks experiments. That was what he was calling them still,

"experiments". In truth they had become more than the test phase of

his lab, and he knew and understood this. The "Toilet Water"

controlled him also, not the same as it did the ladies in his life.

In fact reaching behind, he felt the warm skin of his sisters hip.

She lay on her side facing him, her body exhausted after last evenings

sexual bouts. The night stand next to his bed held an empty bottle of

the wonderful elixir that was becoming a constant addition to

enjoyment. Nothing was forbidden him, when the vapors from the

"Toilet Water" was inhaled by a woman. David smiled as he remembered

his mother was left in her room last night, tied up so as not to

interrupt his enjoyment. Whenever the smell reached her, she would do

anything to enjoy herself.

Quietly slipping out of bed, David did his toilet then slipped into

his mother's room. She was asleep, her naked body tied to the posts

spread-eagle, and a dark vibrator could be seen still between her legs

inside her sex. A cloth gag was stuffed into her mouth and David knew

she had suffered greatly by the lack of attention.

Gently kissing her breasts, which tasted like dried sweat and stale

perfume, he coaxed them to attention. The teen then pulled the gag

from his mothers mouth, which immediately awoke her. Tears quickly

formed, "Thank god David!"

Kissing her gently, "Its okay mother." He moved down to the knots at

her ankles and unbound her from the bed. It was the first time he

tied her, so his sister and him could be alone.

"I thought I would die! I hate what I'm becoming." The tears

increased and when she was unbound, turned to her side away from her

naked son.

"What are you becoming mom?" A tiny part of the youth felt some type

of remorse for his actions, but another part, a larger part looked

upon his mothers naked flanks and felt a stirring between his legs.

"A junky..." She sobbed. "...and a slut!"

"Then you want me to leave you alone? I can stop making any more

`Toilet Water'." She stiffened noticeable at the mention of her

burden. He smiled, "If that is what you want, I will of course follow

your wishes mother."

The sobbing had stopped, and his mom slowly turned back towards her

son. She looked directly into his eyes, "I hated being alone last

night." She had changed the subject!

"I wanted to enjoy Kerry by myself. You know that mother. And you

would not leave us alone." Reaching out and taking a single nipple

between his thumb and forefinger, "While other nights I like to be

alone with you, Kerry respects that."

"I can make you happy David." Jealousy? "I know what my darling baby

needs." She reached out and grasped his soft cock firmly, the message

undeniable. "Kerry hasn't the experience..."

Interrupting, "I thought you hated what you were becoming mom?"

She rapidly pulled her hand from his cock. Then slowly, he watched as

her body relaxed and shrunk in upon itself. "I need it David."

Meaning sex, and the experiment. "Just the mention of it gets me

excited, and to see or smell the perfume I loose all control." She

reached and grasped the hand which was fingering her nipple. His mom
pushed his arm downwards until she pressed it between her closed

thighs, the dampness already coated his hand.

David smiled and easily slide two fingers into his moms vagina. "You

are a slut mom." She didn't say anything but smiled. "Are you my

slut mom?" She nodded. "Are you my little fuck toy?" Again a shy

smile and a nod.

"I'll do anything you want David, I'm your slave."

He smiled, "I like that, my `slave'." Pulling his hand from between

her thighs, "Well slave, go to my room and have my other slave, Kerry,

eat you out. I don't want to have any horny sluts about." He smiled

as his mom slide out of bed and then happily moved to comply.

As she passed her son on the way to the door, "I love you my son."

"I love you slave."

The Sweet Smell of Lust - XV (Part 1)

David noticed and encouraged the rivalry between his mother and

sister. It resulted in his getting to be between two ladies who were

willing to do anything for his attentions. And that meant the winner

also received more of his mind controlling experiment. When Virginia

became a part of his life, he made it clear the beautiful woman could

have anything she wanted, that the two ladies of his house would also

be her slave.

It didn't go over well. Kerry pouted, while his mom simply became

angry and tried to ignore his instructions. They both did what was

expected from them, yet they did not have to like it. The first meal

Virginia attended at David's house was exquisite.

Wearing a wonderful black dress and heels, Virginia looked absolutely

gorgeous. David knew he had made the right choice with this beauty.

It amused him when he saw shock on her face as Kerry came to hang up

the girls jacket wearing only a gold chain about her neck. Then when

David introduced Virginia to his mom, the girls eyes could not believe

what they saw. His mom wore stockings and garters, with heels and an

apron. All white. Her large breasts swing freely about and often

could be seen outside the kitchen apron. To greet David's new friend,

his mom kissed the teen passionately for several long seconds, before

Kerry came in to do the same. He could see his girlfriend was

unsteady upon her feet. "Lets go into the living room and wait for

supper. How much longer mom?"

"Oh, about ten minutes. You kids go on and I'll call you when its

ready." She smiled pleasantly at the new woman in the house and then

turned back towards the kitchen. Her white buttocks swaying as she

walked.

Kerry spoke up, "Would you like anything to drink Virginia?"

"N... no thank you." She sat down on the large comfortable couch,

David sat next to her. "Don't you go to school with us?"

Giggling, "Yes I do. We don't hang around in the same crowds, but

everyone knows you." She knelt before the seated woman, hands upon

her legs. "David's lucky to be going out with the best looking girl
at school." Virginia didn't respond. "Everyone's talking about you

two."

Virginia winced noticeably.

Noticing the reaction, Kerry continued. "Oh, don't worry. All they

really know is that you and my brother are going together." She

reached out and took a shapely calf in her hand, in sort of a

compassionate hold - but she didn't let go. Rather, Kerry simply ran

her hand slowly up and down the shapely leg.

David interrupted, "They also know Virginia needs some practice

sucking cock, right babe?" He reached about and grasped his

girlfriends breast. "Kerry can you go see if mom is almost finished

supper?"

"Sure!" She bounced up and left.

It was obvious what was expected from the teen, "Right here with your

mom in the next room?" He looked at her sternly - it was a stupid

question. She sighed then bent at the waist and pulled his soft cock

from his pants at the same time. As she knew what was expected from

her, Virginia attempted to use her mouth to great advantage. His soft

cock easily fit within her mouth, but as soon as she started to apply

suction - it began to grow quickly. Now, she used her head, moving it

up and down, to stimulate the cock inside her warm wet mouth.

David sighed and moved his hand down to cup one of his girlfriends

perfect buttocks. In the short time they had been together, she had

gotten better with her mouth. Especially since the one time he would

not give her a fix of "Toilet Water" for the pitiful performance that

she gave.

She knew that if she was to get a fix of the drug, she would have to

do the best she could with the cock. Though it was always easier to

allow him to simply fuck her, less involved for her. And when he

opened a vial of perfume at the same time, she finally knew happiness.

The two times he did that, she was in heaven. As long as she had his

cock inside her, she didn't much care.

"David, Virginia, supper time." The teen jerked her head up,

embarrassed to be seen by her boyfriends mom.

Looking calmly over his shoulder, David called out to his mom standing

in the doorway, "Thanks mom." Smiling at Virginia, "Well lets go

eat." She nodded affirmative.

Virginia and David sat at the table, she to his right. His mom began

to spoon various foods onto the two teens plates. Even though she

appeared to act normal, David's mom was seething with jealousy. She

didn't feel like this girl was good enough for her little boy, and

that with the addition of another woman in her son's life may lessen

the number of times she enjoyed her drug and his cock.

A few times David slid his hand down to his mom's exposed thigh or

buttock, enjoying a quick feel of her warm white skin. She encouraged

this behavior and often rubbed herself up against him. He knew of the

jealousy that his mom felt towards Virginia, and wanted to encourage

it even more.

"Kerry." He simply nodded at his sister, who was standing over by the

wall out of the way. She smiled then seductively walked over to the

other edge of the large hardwood table and began to climb on. Turning

towards Virginia as she was daintily eating, "My sister is going to

put on a show for us while we eat."

Slowly, with feline moves, the slim teenager moved about the table

until she eventually positioned her self according to her brothers

earlier orders. She lay upon her back, knees bent and legs spread to

either edge of the table. Kerry's hand began to slowly touch herself

as she gently masturbated herself to the small audience.

Virginia tried not too look, but when she turned the other way, she

saw David fondling his mothers generous bottom. Both sights sickened

and excited her. Then she noticed the faint odor of what David and

his family called "Toilet Water". The anticipated tingling between her

legs caused her to shift about. The teen beauty wondered if she would

become like David's mother and daughter, virtual slaves to his

desires. The smell again reached her nose and she felt her nipples

harden painfully, her vagina begin to moisten hotly, and her breathing

quicken, and she realized she was becoming a just such a slave.

"Are you enjoying your dinner Virginia?"

Momentarily lost in her thoughts, Virginia returned, "Oh. Yes, its

fine. Thank you." Taking a few more mouthfuls, while keeping half an

eye on Kerry's show. The girl was wiggling about enthusiastically,

her sex leaking great amounts of liquid, which Virginia found to be an

exciting sight.

David's mom nodded to her son and pointed him towards his girlfriend.

The attractive teen was cupping one of her full breasts while still

eating daintily. Her eyes, all the while, watching hungrily at Kerry.

David smiled lecherously, "Virginia?" She jumped and turned towards

her "master". "Is your mom as pretty as mine?" He gave the

middle-aged woman a smack upon her generous ass which caused his mom
to giggle girlishly and wiggle her buttocks about.

Looking at his mom up and down, she finally answered, "Not near as

attractive. She could not take her eyes off the wide pink nipples,

which were easily the largest of the three ladies.

"You have three sisters, which ones do you think are pretty?"

She paused before answering, wondering why these questions. "Well my

older sister is beautiful, but I would say Samantha is the best

looking out of the four of us." She felt a lump in her stomach, a

part of her knew what was coming, and feared it.

David was again fondling his moms bottom. "How old is Samantha?"

"Fifteen."

"I was wondering which of your family I would like you to have an

affair with."

Virginia jerked her head up, unsure if she heard correctly. But she

saw the smirk on his moms face, and knew it was all true. She finally

realized David's mom didn't like her for some reason.

David took advantage of his girlfriends silence and continued,

"Samantha sounds great. Could you seduce her sometime within the next

month? I would like to add her to my harem." He laughed lightly. He

reached up and roughly squeezed his moms nipple, "Besides, mom has

Kerry. I think you should have someone." The teen felt her face

drain of blood and she froze. "You will, of course, be properly

rewarded."

The only answer she could manage was to nod. She was indeed becoming

his slave, and hated herself for it.

David noticed his sister's impending orgasm, and asked Virginia,

"Perhaps you should help her out?" Nodding towards his sister.

The beautiful teen wasn't sure what was expected of her, but knew she

had to participate in some way. So reaching out she easily slide her

index finger into Kerry's sloppy sex. Quickly using it as a small

cock, she helped Kerry achieve her orgasm only a few seconds later.

Kerry lay panting upon the table, regaining her strength. She ignored

his brother' girlfriend and the finger, but hoped David enjoyed the

show he had commanded. Since he controlled the flow of "Toilet

Water", it was only his opinion that mattered.

When the exhausted teen finally stopped spasming and groaning out,

Virginia retrieved her finger. Thinking no one was around, she

quickly slipped it into her mouth to taste the juices coating it.

David noticed and was amused. "So you like pussy huh?" Virginia

blushed but didn't react any other way. He already guessed his

girlfriend was sexually inclined towards other women. "I think mother
would like you to eat her pussy?"

His mom licked her lips then moaned out, "I would love her tongue

inside me."

"See Virginia?" He motioned for his mom to climb up upon his lap.

Smiling, the middle-aged woman quickly complied. She straddled her

son's lap, facing away from him and then with his cock pointing out of

his pants, lowered herself upon him. "Get down between our legs and

eat mom out Virginia."

She complied, though she did it slowly. A large part of her was

sickened by these actions, another was extremely excited. She had

hoped her boyfriend would command her to eat out his sister Kerry.

She feared the older woman for some reason.

The beauty climbed beneath the table and crawled up between David's

legs. She pushed her face in towards the two joined bodies and saw

the junction where they were joined. Tentatively, she poked her tongue

into the top of the feminine slit, trying to match the slow speed the

two were moving.

"Come on honey, lick my clit." His mom reached down with both hands

and grabbed the teens head to force it roughly against her stomach and

sex. She felt the tongue finally reach the right spot. "Yes, that's

it. Fuck me with that pretty face of yours."

Kerry, finally recovered, had gotten off the table and came about

beside her brother. She wished it was her between the legs of her

brother and mom, she wanted to be part of the coupling in some way.

Her sex was responding yet again.

David saw his sister standing a foot from him, her hands again

manipulating her sex as she watched the show. Motioning to her, he

pulled Kerry next to him to allow her small hard nipple to enter his

mouth and his hand to reach between her sweaty thighs to replace her

frigging finger with his own.

The sounds of mounting excitement and pending orgasm was loud within

the room. It was even loud from beneath the table, her head between

two sets of thighs. The fingers in Virginia's hair felt like it was

ripping large chunks out, as they roughly forced her to eat out the

wet vagina. She could hardly breath as her forehead was pressed

against the lower stomach and her open mouth directly around the spot

of the woman's clitoris. The teens tongue manipulated the clitoris

quickly, and felt it grow. The smell of sex, the sound of sex, and

even the taste of sex was overwhelming.

David knew his mom was being rough with his girlfriend, but didn't

care. It actually excited him. His cock was speeding up, the

explosion soon approaching.

Kerry could tell this, by the speed of his fingers, as well as the

familiar noise her mom was making. Her mom and brother almost always

came together, and she was determined to also finish her orgasm with

her family.

The two ladies of David's family squealed and gasped out their passion

as orgasms finally reached them. David jerked and then froze his body

when his sperm began shooting out of his hard cock.

Virginia was thankful the episode was almost over, but felt herself

blanking out from the pain of her hair being pulled. When finally the

hands withdrew from her, and the body before her stopped spasming, she

finally sat back to catch her breath and wipe the large amount of

pussy juice covering her face.

It took a while before David asked his mom to move. With tired

muscles she complied. Moving the supper dishes out of the way, she

lay back onto the table, her buttocks at the edge. Then she spread her

legs and bent her knees before placing her heels also at the edge of

the table. This exposed her flowered open sex perfectly.

Virginia was still breathing heavily when she had an intimate view of

Kerry, as the other teen brought her mouth down to clean her brothers

cock. Lovingly she used her tongue and lips to, both, clean and

excite her brother.

"Virginia?" The beautiful teen crawled out from beneath the table and

stood next to her boyfriend. She could not help but notice the

bobbing head in his lap. "Clean mom's cunt." He smiled in her

direction.

She knelt next to Kerry, facing the other way, and brought her face

again between those familiar legs. Virginia could see the pearl

colored sperm seeping the sloppy wet wide cunt. Though she had tasted

both, and didn't fear either, the sight looked less than appealing.

Normally the sight of an attractive woman in such a position would

excite her, but this time it only caused a shiver of fear to run down

her spine.

He watched with amusement until he was satisfied his girlfriend had

cleaned his mom's sex thoroughly. Kerry was beginning to excite him

again, and he could tell his mom was also getting excited. "Well

Virginia?" His girlfriend brought her disheveled face up and wiped

her face. Kerry also looked up smiling with pleasure at her brother.

"I think its time we went upstairs and left these two alone." Kerry

made a pouting face.

He pulled a vial from his shirt pocket and placed it upon his mothers

sweaty stomach. All the females in the room looked at the liquid like

starving animals. "That's for you and Kerry, mom." He pulled out

another vial, "And this is for Virginia and I." Standing, "Come

Virginia lets go to my room, I want to introduce you to the joys of

anal sex." Reaching out he pulled her after him. Though she

willingly came, the young woman hadn't heard a word he said, all her

attention was focused upon the vial in his hand and the enjoyment she

would soon feel when it was unstopped.

It was a long evening.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XVI (Part 1)

It was Sunday morning and David watched as his girlfriend and sister
seated themselves across from him upon the living room couch.

Virginia looked embarrassed while Kerry waited patiently for her

brother to talk.

"So, what are we going to do about this?" David resisted the smile

that started to appear. He doubted he could scare Kelly with this

attitude, knowing she would enjoy the punishment too much, but

Virginia may be a different story. Neither girl said anything, "Did I

not say I never want either of you to have sex with another person?"

It was Kerry that spoke up first, "Actually, you said we could not

have sex with guys?"

"So?"

"Well, we didn't think there was anything wrong with what we were

doing." Kerry reached over and took Virginia's hand. While the

gorgeous teen simply nodded, the blood draining from her face. David

was the sole supply for the highly addictive drug that she now relied

upon and his displeasure could halt her supply indefinitely.

David wasn't mad at all, rather amused that at this situation. Both

young ladies were wearing oversized tee-shirts and socks, both white.

Only moments before he had found them laying side by side, with their

mouth pressed to the others mouth. A very exciting sight - yet David

wasn't sure if he wanted any of his ladies to have sex without his

knowledge. It was his mother that alerted him to what was happening

in his sisters room. He also knew why his mom told him, jealousy.

Before David could say anything, the doorbell upstairs went off. It

was the visitor he was waiting for. He looked to the girls and said,

"Mom will get it." He waited patiently, enjoying the discomfort of

his slaves.

The sound of footsteps coming down the stairs caused all to look up.

The girls beauty was breathtaking. The young woman who descended

towards them, with a smile, looked almost like Virginia, but younger.

She looked innocent, ready for devouring by David and his slaves.

David pulled two vials from his pants and placed them on the coffee

table between him and the girls. Kerry already noticed the small vial

of "Toilet Water" and her eyes hungrily froze upon it. Virginia was

staring upwards towards her sister with surprise and horror.

David stood, "Hello. Its Samantha right?"

The girl came to the edge of the couch and smiled angelic at him,

"Yes." Her voice was tiny, quiet, shy. She looked to her sister, "Hi

Virginia?" The statement also had a question to it, her sister was

spending a lot of time away from home.

David yelled up towards the ceiling, "Mom?!" He waited a few moments

then heard his mom coming. When she finally appeared, he picked up

one vial and held it out to her, "Here mom, will you take Kerry

upstairs and leave us alone for a while?"

His mom smiled sweetly at her only son, "Of course dear." Then

reached for the vial. "Come on Kerry honey." Kerry stood up and

followed her mom, almost anxiously.

"Oh, and ladies, can you please keep the noise down?" They both

giggled as they ascended the stairs.

Samantha had taken Kerry's seat next to her sister. David also

noticed Virginia had finally seen the vial of "Toilet Water" and was

staring at it, but would look uncertainly at her sister infrequently.

David reached out and unstopped the vial and left it upon the table

between the two couches. Virginia took a deep breath to get as much

of the scent into her lungs as possible, then spoke gently and

seductively at her boyfriend, "Why don't we let Sam go home David?"

The younger sister was frowning while taking deep breaths, her knees

uncontrollably rubbed together. "I'll make sure you won't be

disappointed." The smile she gave would easily melt other men's

hearts - yet David could have her and her sister without any

discussion.

"What is that smell?" Spoke the younger girl in a whisper.

They both ignored her. "My dear, don't you want to enjoy Samantha as

much as you have my sister Kerry?"

Virginia shivered uncontrollably, the scent quickly taking affect.

"She is not ready." The girl had trouble keeping her mind on her

objective to get rid of her sister, but the inhalant was winning.

"Of course she is ready, look at her!" Both turned to look upon the

violently shivering teenager. The girl was unconsciously squeezing a

single breast with her hand while rubbing her thighs together to

stimulate her vagina. Virginia lost what resolve she had left after

seeing her sexy young sister.

"Ready for what?" Everyone ignored the younger girl again, looking at

the two faces staring at her.

Virginia was lost in her addiction, nothing else mattered at the

moment. She moved next to her sister and then bent over and forced

her mouth upon the younger girls, a tongue quickly entering the pretty

mouth.

Trying to push her sister away, "Virginia? Please!" She still fought

her sister until the elder girl pressed a hand between the younger

lady's thighs and pressed upwards into the crotch of her jeans. That

was all it took for Samantha to give up the fight and allow her elder

sister to return her tongue to its former spot.

It was not so much a learning lesson as much as an attack for

Samantha. Her elder sister's hands were everywhere, unbuttoning

shirts, unzipping pants, pulling off socks. All the while, the tongue

enjoyed Samantha's mouth, neck and ear. The young girl was surprised

at the assault, and embarrassed that her sisters boyfriend simply sat

watching the two girls with a smile. But the teen could not help

herself, never before had she felt such power and passion from

anything.

In only moments, Virginia lay upon her sister pressing her wet sex

against her sisters. They both were gasping for breath and humping

quickly like animals. Both desperate for a climax to their heightened

emotions. It didn't take long until the orgasm both were driving for

exploded within both bodies. They clenched, squealed, and clawed at

the other until the high ended and they lay in a sweaty heap in each

others arms.

Both came out of their clouded state when they heard someone clapping.

David gave applause at the enjoyable show he just saw. Virginia

smiled, while Samantha hid her face behind her sisters mane of hair in

embarrassment. "That was great!" He stood up and pulled his jeans

and T-shirt off. "But if your anything like your sister Samantha, you

also need to be properly fucked?"

Samantha was peeking from beneath her sisters hair, and gasped in fear

from his words. Though her eyes could not pull from the sight of his

hard cock and her inexperience obvious to all. Virginia surprised her

by groaning out, "I need it!" And then rolled off her sweaty young
body.

The eldest sister, Virginia, crawled upon her knees to the youth. Her

tongue licking her lips in anticipation for the manly rod that thrust

forward from her boyfriend. Without any thought, the beautiful young
woman hurriedly moved until she knelt almost beneath the standing man,

before moving her face up to take him into her mouth.

"I don't think so Virginia." David held her head back a few inches

from his cock. She whined slightly and looked up into his eyes with

pleading desire. Seeing that his desires were paramount, she

stretched out her tongue to flick the tip of it against the hard

underside of the manhood.

Smiling, knowing the situation, nor the scent, was finished with the

two ladies and David was about to take full advantage of it. Seeing

Samantha laying on her back, wide eyed and using both hands to

stimulate her young hard body, he knew what was next. Looking back

down at his horny girlfriend, "Position your sister over the couch,

ass up."

With but a quick apprehensive glance, the eldest girl crawled back to

the couch and man handled her sister about. Samantha simply panted

sensually when her sister approached and grasped a reaching hand to

press it into her overheated groin as an invitation for more feminine

contact. Virginia rushed to comply to her "masters" commands, feeling

the pressure in her sex from the powerful aphrodisiac in the air. She

forced her sister up upon her knees on the couch, facing towards the

rear of it. She made sure her sister's knees were well spread and the

back arched, so as to highlight the shapely teens ass.

With a sexual admiration, she hesitated, simply by looking at her

innocent and sexually excited sister.

"Make sure she is ready for me," David commanded.

Using her index finger, Virginia followed the trail of her sisters

spine down into the crack of her bottom. Past the tightly clenching

muscle of her anus. Until it traced itself through the thickly coated

lips of her sisters inner vaginal lips. And then finally down to the

protruding and enlarged clitoris.

All the while, Samantha as pressing her backside outwards, in a

natural rhythm which desired a more personal contact. The youth moaned

loudly, and pleasantly, at the incestuous touch. Her mind almost gone

to the heavy scent that delivered the most exquisite pleasure that she

had ever experienced.

David could see the juices running down the inside of the slim thighs.

The same juices that covered her sex and now her sisters hand. He

watched with amusement and excitement as Virginia could not control

herself, so aroused by "Toilet Water" that she knelt behind her sister
and pressed her face into the flowered open sex.

"Yes! Yes, Virginia, yes!" The youth screamed out as she felt a

tongue enter the tight wet confines of her sex. Knowing that it was

her sister who was first to taste her nectar, and that simple

knowledge caused an extra shiver to run through her body. Two hands

pulled apart the muscled cheeks allowing easier access to the

treasures hidden there. The tongue now followed the same path the

finger had done earlier.

David took a few steps until he stood behind the kneeling girl. His

girlfriend took a loving hold upon his cock and aimed it towards the

readied sex. He lunged.

Samantha screamed loudly as the cock entered into her, her cherry

mercilessly broken. The scent made her head swim and the pain quickly

turned to pleasure. When a warm fuzzy object was thrust against her

face, she didn't realize it was her sisters pussy and kissed it

lovingly. A hand grabbed her hair and roughly pressed it into the

slimy cavern hidden beneath the hair, but still Samantha was unable to

comprehend what was expected of her. Instead she joyously groaned

loudly in unison with the thrusts of the cock into her.

Virginia was shivering in pent up desire, and began to wiggle her

clitoris against her sisters face. The nose and chin making the most

contact that sped up the inevitable release. David held her sisters

face steady as she pulled upon her own nipples, frantic for an orgasm.

The sweet smell thick in the air could be felt flowing through her

veins as her orgasm fast approached.

She hadn't even noticed David disengaged himself from Samantha until

she spoke, "Come here and clean me off Virginia." He was seated on the

table, his semi-soft cock hanging down between his legs. The traces

of Sam's virgin blood obvious. Yet, the beautiful woman didn't even

wait, she threw herself before her boyfriend and took his cock quickly

into her mouth. She relished the taste of female spend and virgin

blood. It excited her, knowing where this came from.

Virginia finished her orgasm with her hand.

After a few moments, "Come with me Samantha." David held out his hand

for the exhausted teen. Her elder sister curled up upon the carpet,

mindless to her surroundings. Obediently, not even conscious that she

wore no clothes, the pretty young girl followed him. Mingled juices

flowed from her sex down inside her thighs give her a shiver.

Samantha followed David up to the top level of the large house, and

could smell the faint odor of "Toilet Water", she inhaled hugely.

Then she noticed sounds of passion, the same sounds she had made

earlier with her own sister. She knew it was wrong, but her body

began to tingle enjoyably again, and desired another encounter with

her dark-haired sister.

David threw open the door to his mothers room. And held tiny Samantha

before him. "I've brought you a new toy ladies!"

His mom spoke up from between gasps as Kerry's head was pressed

between her sweaty thighs, "Bring the slut in."

Samantha's mind was again overwhelmed by the scent that would become

very familiar to her. She only barely noticed David gently press her

towards the soiled bed, and the two ladies. She was surprised when she

realized the woman reaching for her was David's mom. Hands guided her

face to the large breast and the wide nipple, and Sam's mouth opened

to take it voluntarily.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XVII (Part 1)

Virginia was obviously not happy with her sister joining David's

growing harem. In fact, she would attempt everything to seduce David

before his attentions focused towards the young teen, as they often

seemed to do. Every seductive move and action she attempted, often to

success. Only when the scent was upon her, did all her reasoning

leave and she, again, became her boyfriends slave.

Samantha, on the other hand, could not get enough. Fawning over David

and instantly doing whatever he wished. Her youthful energy and

bubbly personality drove her towards the life of debauchery that was

forced upon her. She volunteered to do anything, and when "Toilet

Water" was in the air, would fuck until she dropped from exhaustion.

This often made Virginia's' attempts at distracting David almost

impossible.

Often, the sole man in the house watched as some or all of the ladies

attacked each others bodies. He especially enjoyed watching his

mother with both young girls. While his girlfriend used her mouth

upon him or sat astride him, even while watching the show.

More and more, Virginia became subservient at the orders of David. He

knew she did not like having her beautiful young sister used as a sex

toy by him and his mother. It was also obvious that his own mother
pleased him in a way Virginia could never do. This in effect left the

eldest woman as over lord of the rest. Perhaps it had been her

attitude when she first met, the attitude she held for everyone not in

her circle of friends. The same friends she no longer had.

Virginia was also responsible for giving Mrs. Wilson a "fix" once a

week. David had attempted to ignore the elder teacher but found her

addiction far to uncontrollable. So with a simple promise and a

thimble size of "Toilet Water", she was a ductile slave, like the rest

of David's girls.

It was more interesting that David inadvertently taught his girlfriend

to control her urges when she delivered a vial to Mrs. Wilson.

Normally, the sight of the "Toilet Water" would send her in a desirous

passion that could only be fulfilled with the smell of his experiment.

Every Friday, Virginia delivered her small package to the forty

something year-old teacher with the promise of her own vial when she

returned.

"Here you go Mrs. Wilson." The gray haired instructor snatched the

vial from her hand. "David told me to tell you, he wants proof of

your desire for him."

Attempting to withhold her urges with the week long awaited drug in

her hands, the middle-aged woman nervously nodded. She looked upon the

beautiful teen, hardly waiting for her to leave so she could enjoy the

scent properly. "I'll make sure David has results for his

experiments. Do you know what he has in mind?"

The stress of being about the drug was heavy upon the teenager and she

was moving to leave. "He did mention something about you having

daughters?"

Mrs. Wilson gasped then looked down at her addiction in her quivering

hands. Her daughters were her only treasure in this world, but this

drug was more important than anything else she owned or loved.

Virginia knew the power of the drug and wasn't surprised when

Mrs. Wilson said, "Of course! Anything for David." It was time for

the teen to leave.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - XVIII (Part 1)

Virginia awoke covered in dried love juices. Her own, her sisters,

David's, his mothers', his sister, and even Mrs. Wilson and her two

daughters. Sitting up, the beautiful teen vaguely remembered the orgy

of sexual debauchery that happened in David's family room only a few

hours before. She also remembered the sweet smell of "Toilet Water"

and shivered in disgust and desire.

Slowly, with quivering tired muscles, the slim teen crawled over to

the couch and sat next to it. Only one of her white stockings
remained upon her body, with the garter belt still about her waist but

unattached to the legging. She wore no other garments. Virginia took

survey about the warm, pillow covered room. Her sister, Samantha, lay

on her side, tied facing Mrs. Wilson's youngest daughter, Jill. Both

young ladies, were inverted and faced the others pretty young pussies.

Which both were now well acquainted with. Mrs. Wilson's other

daughter, Mary, was cuddling with her naked mother. A wide nipple

still near her open mouth. Last night, Mary could not get enough of

her mothers mature body and devoted her incestuous desires solely upon

her mom. Kerry had slept cuddled with Virginia and was now sleeping

soundly in the fetal position.

Memories returned and the exhausted brunette shivered in disgust at

the actions she had no control to stop. David had retired, with his

mother, to her room hours before the other ladies had dropped from

exhaustion. Even with the only male in the group gone, the drug

induced desire of all the other ladies forced their actions.

Now that the drug was out of her system, but the memories could never

be erased, Virginia realized just how much she hated David. How could

anyone do this? The group of them had sat around and watched as Mrs.

Wilson and her two daughters fingered and licked themselves delirious

at David's directions. Later, David's mom had strapped on an

artificial cock and fucked both young newcomers as their mother, Mrs.

Wilson, held them down. All during this Kerry, the only person

Virginia actually felt attracted to, fingered and pawed her body. It

was a show put on by a drug that only David controlled.

Last evening, when a large vial of the potent aphrodisiac was opened,

Virginia attempted to control herself. It was useless, that much was

obvious to the beautiful teen. Again a shiver of disgust ran through

her as she remembered her own actions.

How many times her body was rocked by an orgasm was uncountable, since

she could only remember a part of the evening. The pain between her

legs reminded her of one event that had occurred. Virginia had sat

upon David's lap facing him, his hard cock inside her overheated

vagina. She was happily enjoying herself, bouncing wildly upon her

boyfriend, when his mom came up behind her and inserted the strapped

on dildo into her rectum. In her delirium, Virginia forgot the pain

and allowed the two "cocks" to fuck both her holes until the feeling

of David's hot sperm shooting into her womb caused her own orgasm to

explode.

Of course Virginia knew what caused her, and all the other ladies, to

act this way. The only thing she had not figured out yet, is why

David never seemed affected by the scent. She guessed it was his

experiment and he knew what to do to get the smell to affect others.

Since David definitely enjoyed female companionship, that seemed the

obvious reason it was never used on another male. The fact that it

only worked upon females never occurred to her.

Jill awoke silently and looked up from between the firm young thighs

towards the seated elder teenager. Virginia saw the wide friendly

eyes looking her over, with inviting desire they seemed to remember

how the elder girl had used her mouth to please her.

A movement for another portion of the room caused her to look at

Mrs. Wilson. The middle-aged woman slid out from her daughters grasp

and wrapped a blanket about her nudity. Shyly, with a nervous tired

body, the teacher backed out of the room. A few tears already coming

to her eyes. Virginia felt sorry for the science instructor, how she

had pimped her daughters sexuality for the pleasure David gave her

with "Toilet Water". Though, she realized, she had not fought very

hard when David had introduced Samantha into his "harem". Now,

remembering, she also felt sorry for herself.

Everyone in the room now appeared to be awake or beginning to rise.

Mary untied her sister and Samantha while Kerry leisurely rubbed

between her legs. It was the only sexual action in the room, and it

almost seemed out of place. Even with the tired, mostly naked bodies,

the young ladies did not seem to expel sexuality. Mary appeared to be

embarrassed, while her sister Jill like a kid that ate too much candy

but still wanted more. Samantha retired to the distant washroom.

Mrs. Wilson soon returned. She was again clothed in the skirt and

blouse she wore last evening when her sole desire was to seduce David

with her body, and her two daughters. Now, with the disheveled face

and hair, wrinkled skirt and untucked blouse, she looked like a woman

who was rushing home to her husband from her lovers arms. She stood

next to the couch, "Virginia, would you tell David I had to go? I

want to be home before my husband shows up." She was blushing

fiercely.

Virginia realized the older woman was ignoring her two daughters, even

though they appeared to be awaiting her attention. The things she did

to her daughters last night, it was no wonder she now acted this way.

"David likes us", she wanted to say `slaves' but caught herself in

time, "to say good-bye `properly'." He, in fact, often liked to view

his woman when the effects of the drug wore off.

At that moment David stepped into the family room, dressed and ready

for the day. His mother, also cleaned up and clothed, stood behind

her only son looking sternly at the lounging group of naked youths.

Everyone in the room seemed to notice him at the same time, and

Mrs. Wilson spoke quickly, "I thought you would be still asleep or I

would have come up to say good-bye. I have to get home." She appeared

even more nervous

Virginia noticed the two sets of reactions that the ladies in the room

did when the sole outlet for "Toilet Water" stepped into the room.

Even without the scent in the air, Kerry, Samantha, and Jill suddenly

focused all attention upon the "master". All sat straight, arched

their backs, pressed their chests out, lifted their chins, pouted

their lips, smiled sweetly, and struck a sexy pose. The other group,

appeared to be nervous and embarrassed, and attempted to hide from the

teenagers searching eyes.

David's girlfriend wondered what her initial reaction had been?

David's mom spoke to her son, "I don't think she had any intention of

saying good-bye." Virginia hated that attractive older woman almost

more than she hated David.

He smiled over his shoulder at his mom, love in his eyes, "No she

probably didn't. What do you think we should do to her?"

Before his mom could answer, Virginia spoke up, "We thought you were

still asleep David, or I think a few of us would have come up to join

you." She struck "the" pose for her boyfriend.

David smiled gently at her, almost knowingly, and it made the Virginia

shiver in fear. What would happen to her if he should ever stop

giving her "Toilet Water"?

The young man turned towards Jill who had been rolling a nipple

between two fingers while smiling sweetly at her possessor. "What

punishment should we give your mom Jill?"

Mrs. Wilson looked nervously at her daughter. Jill ignored her mom
and concentrated on her masters attentions, "She used to spank us when

we were bad." The young woman beamed when David smiled with pleasure

at the statement.

"I think that is a wonderful idea. A spanking." Mrs. Wilson

shivered and stared down at her own feet. "But I think Mary should

deliver it." That shocked most in the room, except perhaps, David's

mom, his sister and Virginia.

Mrs. Wilson started to cry, and dropped to the couch next to Virginia,

holding her body in her own arms. Between sobs, "My god David please

let me go!? Don't make my own daughter spank me. I can't take any

more."

Ignoring his instructor and speaking to her daughter who looked

startled. "Well Mary, do you think your mom should get a spanking?"

The cute young woman quickly stole at look at her sister, Jill, but

received no help there. Then she looked at Virginia, almost as if her

eyes were asking for help. Virginia simply nodded affirmative, it

would go easier on the older woman if David got his own way.

It was obvious why David had picked on Mrs. Wilson's

daughter. Everyone in the room saw how the cute, shy Mary had been

obsessed with her mom's naked body hours before. How she had degraded

herself for the pleasure of an incestuous joining with her own mom.

Mary may be shy, but she was bright. She knew why Virginia had nodded

for her to do the spanking. "Get on your knees mommy." Pointing,

"Over there against the couch." Mary walked over, now ignoring her

own nakedness, and helped her sobbing mother to kneel facing the

crowd.

David's mom came over and handed Mary a light cord from the wall

coverings. It would take many strikes for the cord to harm the

middle-aged woman's buttocks. The current drama was more for effect

than to harm. Mary's shaking hand lifted her mom's loose skirt up

over her ass and lay it upon her back. Mrs. Wilson hadn't worn any

underwear last night, in her frantic obsession to enjoy the scent she

had only used infrequently. She now wished she had.

"Jill hold your moms head," ordered David's mom. The youth, knowing

who was in control in the room smiled as she complied. Jill sat before

her mom and held the others hands firmly. Mary whispered, though all

in the room could hear her, "I'm sorry mommy."

The first strike startled Mrs. Wilson and she jerked in response. Jill

pressed her moms head between her youthful upper thighs, inches from

her sex. The strikes continued, about two every ten seconds. A slow

torturous beating, by her own daughters caused Mrs. Wilson to cry

out, not from pain, but from humiliation. To stifle her cries, Jill

pulled her moms head the last few inches until it pressed right into

her newly excited sex.

Virginia felt her face smiling, but didn't feel happy in the least.

She knew if David had asked her to whip her own mother she would have

to take the place of Mary. A part of her was very glad her mother had

not aged well after several kids.

The spectators watched in silence - almost all were affected in some

way. David's mom hugged her son from behind, rubbing her body up and

down his back. Kerry and Samantha were openly fondling each other,

fingers manipulating the others sex. Virginia hated the sight she

watched, yet felt her own juices beginning to coat the inside of her

thighs.

Mary began to sweat from the effort she put into each swing, but from

the look on her face she knew it did not hurt her mother and the she

was greatly enjoying herself. Jill was moaning while humping her

mothers face, the nose pressed into her tiny sensitive clitoris. Both

daughters didn't even notice anyone else in the room.

Finally David spoke up, "Stop!" Everyone turned their attention to

the single male in the room. "Jill, Mary, take your mother up to my

sisters room and enjoy her. On the table in the kitchen is another

vial of `Toilet Water'. Use it." Jill let go of her mom and quickly

stood up. Mary dropped the cord and then lovingly helped her mother
up. Everyone in the room could see tears humiliation and her

daughters sexual coating upon Mrs. Wilson's bright red cheeks. It was

doubtful she would ever disobey her young student again.

This time, Mrs. Wilson didn't fight her directions. Jill ran over to

David and have him a devoted kiss before bouncing, happily, up the

stairs. Mary helped her mom's unsteady legs also go up the stairs.

The three of them were in for a long few more hours. Yet, the two

daughters both looked anxious rather than burdened.

David also turned to go, obviously with his mom. Since they were

dressed, Virginia guessed they were leaving the house. David's

girlfriend heard a familiar noise and turned to see her sister and

David's in a sixty nine. Both frantically humping the others face for

another orgasm.

Virginia stood and decided to clean the smell of sex from her body.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XIX (Part 1)

David's home had become a den of addicts and sexual deviants.

Within the household, every woman seemed to instinctively know the

hierarchal order of David's ladies. At the top of all the addicts,

was David's own mother. She had come to terms with her previous

worries and used her power, as mother, over her son. It gave her many

freedoms within the house, a few none other enjoyed. Also David

showed his mother more sexual attentions than any other woman that was

addicted to his lab experiment. The sexy older woman had proven

herself capable of doing any sexual action that her own son had an

interest in. These reasons coupled with the fact that David enjoyed

the sinful aspect of there relationship had given her also the power

over the other ladies within the household. Every woman in that house

knew of her power over her son.

It was only Virginia that challenged David's mom to the head position

within that house. Simply because, David showed great fondness

towards his schoolmate and girlfriend. In contrast to his mom,

David's girlfriend was probably had less sexual duties assigned to

her. Of course, Virginia still lost her self control and was willing

to do anything when the scent of "Toilet Water" came upon her. Yet,

those were more compassionate couplings, with mostly the other ladies.

Rarely did Virginia and David's mom ever acknowledge the other or have

intercourse. It was only David's explicit instructions or the sexual

drive of the drug that caused them to use the others body to release

sexual tensions. On the other hand, she had less freedom than any

other woman in the household also. David liked his girlfriend to keep

close by, practically at all times.

Since first becoming David's slave and girlfriend, Virginia's

expertise in giving oral sex had increased many times. This was true

in both the female and the male oral enjoyment. All but David's mom
desired Virginia's mouth between their legs. And she was used this

way more than any other by her boyfriend.

"What do you think mom, is our house getting overly crowded?" David

groaned pleasantly while holding Virginia's head above his lap as it

moved rhythmically up and down.

The older woman smiled towards her only son and pulled apart

Samantha's buttocks so he could see between the youthful crack. There

was no "Toilet Water" in the air and the mature mother used the young
teen more for her son's visual enjoyment than her own sexual pleasure.

Sitting back upon the couch, naked and looking sexy, David's mom had

strapped on a toy they had purchased a few weeks ago. It was a six

inch fake cock, with a leather belt that held the phallus in the

proper place. Straddling her thighs was the hard bodied young woman,

the fake cock inside her sex and her back to her sister and boyfriend.

Samantha groaned pleasantly. David's mom had told her to mount the

cock, and even without any scent in the air, the teenager gratefully

did it. She was conscious that David was in the room, and she wanted

to please him. Whoever pleased the only man of the house had an

endless supply of the "Water".

Looking over Samantha's shoulder, the middle-aged woman replied,

"Sometimes I think it is." She moved a finger further between the

tight buttocks and pressed the digit against the hard muscle of the

youthful anus. David smiled at the sight, just as his mother had

wished. "I always love being alone with you darling." The finger

pressed deeper into the tiny rectum as she spoke.

David smiled at his mothers comment, but his eyes hadn't left

Samantha's violated asshole. "Damn that looks hot mom!"

She giggled at his comment, the same girlish giggle David had first

heard the night after his mother had first smelled his experiment.

"Feels hot." The experienced woman began to fuck the young asshole

with the single index finger. "And tight too!" Samantha groaned out

in mixed pain and pleasure. Her young body still bouncing over the

synthetic cock. The young woman knew what it meant to disappoint

David or his mother.

Virginia heard her younger sisters groans of pain mixed with pleasure

and, again, felt sorry for the teen. She was an innocent in her eyes,

someone that David had involved simply because he desired another kink

to add into his very sexual lifestyle. She felt the throbbing member

slid back and forth between her lips and knew all she had to do was

bit down and it would all be over. Yet she also knew she could never

do that, not while he controlled the supply of "Toilet Water"

"Why don't you come over here dear?" Virginia could hear that certain

quality in the middle-aged woman's voice that she only used when

seducing her only son.

David pushed Virginia's face from his lap and quickly jumped across

the few feet to kneel behind Samantha. The older woman held the girl
in place while also pulling apart her buttocks. Her son aimed his

cock and pressed it against the tight asshole.

Virginia watched in horror as her own sister was impaled from both

directions while she bit into the cushion of the couch to hold back

her cry of pain. David never seemed to notice when his enjoyment

conflicted others. While his mother watched the young girls face and

smiled maliciously.

Soon, the three on the couch were coupling to a new rhythm. On that

the young man led. "Fuck mom, I can feel you inside her!"

"Does it feel good baby?"

"Oh yea!" David sped up. Virginia knew from her own experience that

her boyfriend never lasted long whenever he enjoyed anal sex.

The older woman noticed the girlfriend kneeling on the floor watching

the affair and nodded for her to join in. Virginia pretended she

hadn't seen the look, when David's mom ordered her to, "Stick your

tongue up David's ass."

David grinned, "God your so kinky mom!" Virginia knew she had to

comply, and that her boyfriend would never had thought of her without

the parental help.

The older woman leaned over the young woman's shoulder to look into

her sons face. "And you love me don't you baby?"

Virginia pulled apart her boyfriend buttocks and stuck her tongue out.

She aimed her face and closed her eyes as she leaned forward to comply

with her orders.

"Yea mom. I love you." The tongue pressed against his hard virgin

asshole, the pleasant feeling surprised him. "I love your tits, I

love your ass, I love your legs", he groaned out as the tongue forced

itself a centimeter into his asshole, "and I especially love your

cunt!"

"Come here lover?"

David leaned towards his mothers face and allowed her tongue to slid

into his mouth. At that same time, he felt the familiar tightening of

his balls and the sudden clenching of the muscles in his cock. The

long awaited orgasm was upon him.

Virginia knew her boyfriend was shooting his sperm into her sisters

asshole, by the clenching of his own anal muscle, the grunting noise

he made, and the fake sounds of passion his mother made.

It wasn't long before Samantha felt the thick cock pull finally from

her sore rectum. It popped as it came out and the older woman's voice

beneath her spoke to her elder sister, "Why don't you clean your

sister up Virginia?"

After David had disengaged from the young teen, he rolled onto the

couch next to his mother. He was normally tired after an orgasm, but

usually had enough energy to enjoy a more gentler passion. His

mother, knowing exactly what pleased her son, reached over and grasped

the flaccid dirty penis and milked the remaining drops of come from

his body.

Seeing that Virginia was hesitant on following her wishes, David's

mom, added, "After that, come over here and clean my son up." The

middle-aged woman leaned sideways to bring her mouth to the young
man's and kissed him gently. "How does that sound David?"

"Wonderful mom." He never saw his mother's smile of triumph, nor

Virginia's sour face as she leaned into Samantha's spread cheeks to

tongue her sister clean.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - XX (Part 1)

David noticed a lot of what was going on within the house. In

particular, the power struggle between his mother and his girlfriend.

He also knew that his mother was winning the struggle, while Virginia

became the confidant and friend to all the other females in his

household. A part of his animal aggression enjoyed the competition,

since he was the ultimate winner. Another part of him felt sorry for

his girlfriend, the same part that allowed her more freedom than he

would normally grant one of the addicted ladies.

David lay awake in his bed, warmly snuggled between Virginia and her

sister, Samantha. It had been months since his discovery of the

"Toilet Water" and the effect it had upon every females who smelt it.

Time had passed so quickly that he fully realized the total control he

now enjoyed over "his" ladies. A part of him, a distant part, felt a

small twinge of guilt at the actions he requested from every woman he

ever desired. Another part of him wondered just what the future held

for the ladies in the household.

Virginia had also been awake and watched David as he stroked her

sisters mane of hair and gently kissed her slim shoulder. Rarely did

he ever show such gentleness, and the attractive teenager wondered

what he was thinking.

The light of dawn was just starting to filter into the unshaded window

and David softly sat up in bed and looked back at the two sisters on

either side of him, they were still asleep. He smiled as he climbed

off the bed, remembering the passionate evening only hours before.

Then he opened his bedroom door and left to shower.

The elder teen also slide from the bed and silently exited the room.

She felt the dried proof of her boyfriends desire upon her smooth skin

and the ache in her well-used loins. David was taking a shower, the

water wasn't loud enough to hide his awful singing voice. Past the

closed door, Virginia was about to descend down the stairs when she

saw that the master bedroom door was still ajar. More inquisitive

than anything else, Virginia took the extra two steps until she could

stick her head into the dimly lit room.

David's mother lay in the middle of the large bed, her body covered in

glistening oil and several discarded toys lay beside and beneath her.

An empty vial, of the addictive scent, lay on the table next to the

bed. Sleeping at her feet was her daughter Kerry, also still covered

in massage oil but with her hands tied behind her back.

Virginia was about to depart, disgusted by the sight she saw, hating

the middle-aged woman who controlled her son and this house. The

wronged teen saw more of the cloth cords on the floor and stooped to

grab two of them. Bending over the bed, she slowly and gently tied

David's mother to the oak headboard above her. Virginia knew well how

much enjoyment the older woman extracted from her sexual play and

smiled knowing the older woman was exhausted. Then she found Kerry's

discarded French-cut panties and very quickly opened the woman's mouth

and stuffed it with her daughters undergarments.

The older woman hadn't time to scream out in surprise or anger. Nor

did she realize that she was tied until after Virginia sat next to

her, the attractive teenage eyes smiling. The middle-aged woman

didn't try to scream or escape, she only smoldered in her anger.

While fantasizing about the expected revenge she could extract. She

was surprised when her son's girlfriend simply sat up and walked out

of the room leaving her to quietly lay waiting for someone to untie

her.

David felt the presence before he saw it, when the shower curtain

suddenly opened. "Hi! Can I join you?" It was, of course, Virginia,

but wearing a bubbly smile that he hadn't seen on her for months.

"Of course." She stepped into the tub and pulled the curtain closed

behind her. He, again, enjoyed a quick view of the toned sexy

teenager. Proud that the best looking girl in school was also his

girlfriend.

Virginia stuck her head under the water and allowed her face and hair

to get wet. "Did you enjoy yourself last night Vee?" It was his pet

name for her.

The topic of conversation rarely changed within the house, and it was

almost always about sex. Virginia didn't tell him the truth, and

kissed his lips passionately. "You know I did silly. How did he",

she grasped his flaccid penis, "enjoy himself?" She then pressed her

wet smooth body against him and again meeting his lips with her own.

After they broke the lip lock he continued, "That question didn't need

an answer." They both laughed, though Virginia felt more like

cringing than laughing. His hands had found her firm round bottom and

preceded to fondle it mercilessly. "You haven't laughed like that in

weeks." More like months actually, she thought. "What do I owe this

honor to?"

She had to be careful, David was an intelligent, if not naive young
man. He was an egghead before he ever discovered "Toilet Water".

Virginia hid her face from his eyes, worried that her hatred could

seen. "I was thinking about skipping school."

"Again?"

"I'd rather stay home and play some more. I was never very bright

anyway the only important class is Mrs. Wilson's." Nothing else

needed to be said in that area, both of them would excel in her class

without taking another step in her classroom. Before he could speak,

she feigned embarrassment and asked, "Could I have another vial

David?" Her hand felt between his legs and squeezed his manhood,

"Please honey?"

Laughing, more at his own importance than anything funny. "So your

just horny huh babe?" That was something that always disgusted

Virginia, how all guys seemed to be blatantly blunt about sex.

She pressed her full, but trimmed, bush against his thigh while still

stroking his cock. "I was thinking about making up with your mom."

He paused at that, then continued, "That's a good idea babe. But I

don't know if it will work?"

"I just thought it was worth a try... after the fun last night, I

wondered what it would be like to relax and enjoy a day with your

mom." A finger slide between her firm buttocks and pressed playfully

against her abused anus.

"Well, I guess its fine then. As long as you try to get along with

her okay?"

She nodded shyly into his shoulder. After these months of kinky

possession and sexual slavery to this teenager, she was starting to

knew how to get her way with him. In fact, she only had to watch his

mother to learn how to manipulate David. Playfully she reached for

the soap and asked if he missed any places. They spent a long twenty

minutes in the shower lathering up and enjoying the others wet body.

They didn't have intercourse, because his manhood was exhausted and

Virginia felt disgust at his "thing" again being inside her. Yet,

like she had learned from watching his mom, anything was possible when

he was in a good mood.

Virginia saw him to the back door, waving as he left in her sports car

for school. Finally when the squeal of tires could no longer be

heard, she against ascended the stairs. "Okay bitch, lets see if we

can't make up."

The older woman's eyes immediately found Virginia's as the door again

opened. The teenager opened her robe and let it drop to the floor.

In her hand was a vial, that was the moment when the middle-aged woman

became worried. "Well mom," everyone in the house had been calling

her that for over a month since David had called her the "den mother",

"today you are mine." Virginia opened the bottle and inhaled deeply

as she stepped into the room.

The scent quickly drifted into every corner of the master bedroom and

the three woman felt the desire within them rise. Only Kerry didn't

know what was going on, but even asleep her sex moistened and her mind

began to fantasize. David's mother pressed her thighs together,

moaning into the gag.

Virginia's hands reached for her sex and she tried to slow her fingers

manipulation of her clitoris. Stepping slowly towards the bed, "I'm

going to treat you like the slut you are mother dearest." She rolled

up onto the foot of the bed facing the bound woman. She pushed aside

a tiny vibrator and moved her foot up between the woman's rapidly

wetting sex. Her big toe easily found and entered into the loose

folds of the middle aged vagina. "You slut will have to learn your

place, right bitch?" She shoved her toe harshly into the cunt causing

a sharp reaction. "Your here for my pleasure today whore."

The movement beside her startled her, until Virginia saw that it was

Kerry watching everything while humping her young sex into the bed for

some type of stimulation. "Look at her mom, your slut of a daughter
can't get enough." The laugh was malicious as Virginia grabbed the

older woman's closest foot and brought it to Kerry's face. The young
woman attacked the toes with her mouth, hungry for any attention.

David's mother feared his son's girlfriend very much, but she could

not stop the desire she felt from the stimulating scent. When her

daughters warm wet mouth enclosed upon her big toe she thought she was

about to orgasm, but then the sharp pain of the other toe, inside her

sex, stilled that pleasure. She also saw, before Virginia did,

Samantha standing in the doorway frantically rubbing her own sex. The

still developing teen looked sexy with the weary worn look of the `day

after'.

"Sam, go get some clothes pins, a belt and a cloth." Ordered the

older sister. One thing about Samantha, she always did what she was

told. Virginia saw that the young teen quickly departed before

disengaging herself and jumped out of bed.

The tiny vibrator still on the bed gave her another idea, and Virginia

took it with a wicked smile on her face. Bending down over the bed

and between the older woman's attractive legs, the teenager brought

the dry plastic toy towards the humping sex. She bypassed the

flowered open very wet dark pink vaginal lips and pressed the pointed

tip against the dark wrinkled asshole down lower. The juices of the

woman's excitement had lubricated the area excessively and the fake

phallus easily entered into the mature woman's anus. The young woman

didn't stop pressing it into the hole until only the last centimeter

of it lay exposed.

David's mom was grunting now. Eager for an orgasm. From the hungry

mouth sucking mercilessly on her toe, to the rough handling of the

vibrator inside her asshole, she simply needed a gentle touch to her

clitoris to bring her off. Humping the air and pushing her toe into

Kerry's mouth, the woman was almost beyond reason as her sole thought

was of an orgasm.

The older vagina was very familiar to the young attractive teenager,

she had often serviced this `cunt' while being under the influence of

"Toilet Water". And when she pressed three fingers into it, she knew

it would be a tight fit. When the fourth finger stretched the skin

and forced itself into the hungry hole, David's mom screamed with

surprised pain into the dirty panty.

Virginia laughed as she added her thumb and felt the vaginal walls

holding her tightly until the knuckles slide passed the outer muscles

and her hand was immersed inside the attractive older woman. The

teenager could see the wide pain filled eyes of the bound mother, and

smiled to her. Even delirious from the passion brought on by the

scented stimulant, Virginia was amazed where her hand was.

Just about then, Virginia heard the gasp of astonishment quickly

followed by a moan of lust from her younger sister. Samantha held the

objects her sister requested but could not help but look dumbly at the

sight before her. "Sam, get over here and put those clothes pins on

the `Den Mothers' tits!"

Samantha quickly opened the first wood clip and let it close about the

hard nipple of the tortured middle-aged woman. The other quickly

followed. The young woman wasn't sure what to do since her sister was

taking great malicious pleasure in tormenting David's mom while

rubbing her own pussy with her free hand. Feeling the heat of her

loins drawing her towards some action, she saw that Kerry was faced

down and tied. She also saw the attractive round bottom as it ground

into the bed. Sam could hardly control herself and jumped behind

Kerry, quickly pulling the firm cheeks apart and spearing her tongue

into the tight muscle of the other's tiny anus.

Kerry simply groaned out her surprise and enjoyment from this

unanticipated attack and lifted her hips to allow her friend easier

access to her bottom. It was like her brothers hard cock, only

smaller and wetter - as it began to penetrate her body.

With disappointment, Virginia saw that David's mom was starting to

enjoy herself. And was humping her pelvis up to meet the thrusting

hand and fingers deep inside her body. Without any thought to the

older woman's pleasure, Virginia pulled her hand from the clenches of

the wet hot folds. The towel her sister had brought came in handy to

wipe off her hand.

The teen saw the older lady's eyes plead with her , she needed an

orgasm. This is how David feels, Virginia thought. This power and

control was almost as enjoyable as the orgasm which he often gave as

punishment or pleasure.

Her own body was frantic with the desire to climax. Virginia pulled

the damp panty from the older woman's mouth. "Make me come Virginia,

please!" The last word was almost a scream. Yet it still sounded like

an order. The very attractive teenager moved about upon the bed and

was soon able to straddle the bound woman's head. The woman tried to

move her face to the side, having a clue why her son's girlfriend was

mounting her head. The dripping sex lowered and forced itself

directly over her mouth.

Virginia motioned to the Kerry, "Suck you mother's cunt bitch!" The

young woman was only too pleased to follow that instruction and

crawled away from Samantha's mouth so she could place her own upon her

mothers hot sex.

When the young woman's mouth started to enjoy the sloppy sex of her

mother, Virginia felt the woman beneath her scream out in pleasure.

The sound dampened considerably by her own body. David's mom could

not stand it and shoved her tongue up inside the vagina above her.

Next, Samantha crawled around and pulled a clip from the nearest wide

nipple, her mouth quickly encircling and sucking the sensitive skin.

That was enough for the `Den Mother' and she began to orgasm loudly

and violently. Her body jerking about the three other teenagers until

she lay exhausted. Two mouths continued to lick and suck upon her

body, and a wet hot cunt was rubbing up and down her face quickly

making it difficult to breath. The older lady managed to get a few

words out, "Please... stop!"

Her own orgasm quickly approaching, Virginia heard the words and it

pulled her out of the luxurious fog of her excitement. The eldest

teen rolled off the sweaty cunt-juice covered face and immediately

thought of the next enjoyment. "Sam, Kerry...", she gave quick

detailed instructions to the two attractive girls. Then she leaned

over the glistening face of the `Den Mother' and asked, "Are you going

to do as I say or should I get nasty?" While she said this, her

fingers found and twisted the hard nipple which was still covered in

Samantha's saliva.

"I'll do anything! Anything you want Virginia. Please god, I'm so

horny!" It was partially the scent of the lab experiment and

partially the pain talking. The teen also wondered if she had found

the answer to the problem of this woman's dominance over the house -

fear.

Virginia untied the older woman's body than quickly gave her

instructions. After the woman was finished, it was amusing to be able

to see the older lady as she lay above her daughter. Upon their

backs, Samantha and Kerry pressed each wet sex together, their legs

intertwined like rope. Kerry's mom straddled her daughters head and

then bent over, her own face right in line with both young beavers.

What was more amusing about the situation, was the sight of the

phallus still sticking out of her bottom and the single clothes pin on

her hanging nipple.

As usually, Kerry could not control herself and immediately pushed her

face up into her mom's sex. Her youthful but energetic tongue easily

finding the enlarged and sensitive clitoris. This caused David's mom
to groan out loudly and then press her own face down onto Samantha's

clitoris. Virginia simply fingered her own sensitive clit and found

her orgasm quickly approaching. She wanted something for all to

remember this moment by, for everyone here to know who was in charge.

Even as the belt landed upon the raised bottom, Virginia's orgasm

exploded.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXI (Part 2)

They were called pheromones.

Virginia sat in her old high school library and continued to research,

hoping to find something that gave her a way out of the life she now

led. She had found many references to animals being controlled by

scent but none that hinted at how to break them from their own savage

urges. The more she researched the deeper was her despair, there

appeared no answer to her dilemma.

Months had passed, and her boyfriend's house had changed but little.

David was the sole supplier for the addictive drug known by only a

handful as `Toilet Water'. He created it in his small basement lab

and behind locked doors distributed into small thimble sized

containers. It was given to the selected ladies in his house, to be

used as he saw fit. It was often a means of a reward and sometimes to

subdue.

Though Virginia wanted to break her addiction to the delicious scent,

she had yet been able to control herself after the first distant smell

reached her nose. She tried to hold her breath, but her own urges

quickly changed her plan. So delirious for the liquid that she became

desperate whenever she saw it.

Her life had changed hugely by her uncaring boyfriend. Once, Virginia

was the queen of the high school social scene, but that soon changed

to being an outcast. None of her original friends accepted her new

relationship with David, at least the public relationship which they

knew about. He was not accepted in the crowd she once reigned in.

Yet, she had no choice. In fact, David often liked to show off his

mastery of the best looking girl in school. Necking in the hallways,

a fondle of her bottom all while one of her former friends stood by.

Virginia had no choice.

Her graduation from high school was barely noticed by anyone. Only

David missed her about the halls of his school, as he had two more

years to attend before also graduating. At his request she moved into

his house and slept in the converted family room in the basement. The

large private room had been converted into a huge plush comfortable

den for David's pleasure. Virginia rarely slept alone these days.

Samantha often slept over, with an anxious excitement that Virginia

wished she herself felt. Her parents, didn't like that she had moved

into her own place or that another of their daughters spent so much

time over there. Yet after meeting David and his polite assurance

that they had their own space, they conceded to their daughters

wishes. They were often too busy with work and their large family to

worry about one, or two, of their daughters private lifestyles.

What happened to Mrs. Wilson was what every woman who has tasted the

pleasure of `Toilet Water' feared. With David's direction she was

instructed to leave her husband and find her own apartment with her

two daughters. The apartment only had one bedroom but big enough for

a huge bed. She of course, followed his every wish. If she was not

summoned to her masters home on any given week, she would be given a

vial of the addictive scent to hold her over.

That was when she seemed to loose control of the fragile balance

between pleasure and sanity that they all lead. David dropped off the

vial to his instructor at school, as she often did, Mrs. Wilson

quickly opened it to enjoy the smell. Returning to retrieve his

forgotten books, David found the older woman kneeling naked in the

middle of three students. Each of the young men had their cocks out

and she was frantically sucking and stroking them. The scent driving

her passions past caring. That was the end of her pleasure and the

beginning of a torturous time.

Virginia suspected it was also an addition to the original experiment

to David. How would an addicted woman react when the flow of `Toilet

Water' was turned off - not well as was evident to how Mrs. Wilson

reacted. She was still a junkie, and the simple thought of the drug

would cause her to do just about anything. The last Virginia heard

was that she hitched her way south with two of her students where she

abandoned them for a truck driver. She was not heard of since. Her

two daughters, Jill and Mary, now lived with David.

David's sister Kerry was still the attentive and sexual object of

passion in the house. She loved her brother very much and gave him

any liberty with her person. In fact she loved to be taken advantage

of - to be used. She was still his biggest supporter for the

continuation of their current lifestyle.

David's mom had changed since that morning when Virginia lost control

and tormented her. The attractive teen felt remorse at what she had

done to the older woman, but realized her intentions had worked. No

longer was the middle-aged mother a domineering factor in Virginia's

life, rather she was very submissive with her son's girlfriend.

No other lady in the household could get away with anything when

David's mother was about, yet Virginia seemed separated from this

pressure. In fact, when the opportunity presented, the middle- aged

woman became quite submissive and desirable for Virginia. The young
woman suspected it was her own show of force that seemed to set the

dominate role she now enjoyed.

Virginia was in fact embarrassed at what she did to the woman, and had

yet to again torment and pleasure her in the same was as that one

time. Sometimes the older woman begged to be spanked, and Virginia

had no qualms about delivering a firm open-handed spanking to the pale

round buttocks. But that was as far as she was prepared to go.

Unless provoked.

If things hadn't changed much in that house, it was because David

wanted them to stay just the way they were. He wanted to wake up in

the morning with one or two of the woman in his household. He wanted

to be able to fuck any woman, anytime, he wished. He usually liked

his ladies with nothing worn but a smile, other than his mother and

her sexy lingerie. Within his house, every action, every decision was

controlled by the only man in all those ladies lives.

David was a nerd in school, and it was obvious to Virginia, he was

also a nerd at home. He enjoyed playing little games with his ladies

while he watched. His high intelligence sometimes didn't help him to

understand women or the world in general. That is why he relied upon

his mother for guidance to keep the household running without any

interference from anyone not under his control.

Virginia knew money was starting to run thin. David's mom had missed

so many days from work while having many more mouths to feed that

simply paying the mortgage seemed to strain the budget. David was

even going to send Virginia out to get a job but she had overheard the

`den mother' convince her son not to. The teen was not sure why.

A pile of books lay before her, a pile of books that did little to

answer her questions. She felt like crying in frustration and anger.

Virginia didn't know what to do, how to break her addiction to `Toilet

Water'. Just sitting there alone thinking about it causes her to

quiver with delicious anticipation. Even while her mind is disgusted

with herself at her uncontrollable actions.

She stood to meet her boyfriend, as it was only moments before his

last class of the day.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXII (Part 2)

David sat smoldering with anger. In his hand was another overdue

bill, the hydroelectric bill. His mother sat across from him while

his girlfriend sat on his right side.

All were silent.

The young mans paradise was starting to fade. Real life was beginning

to interrupt his sexual island and he was not sure how to stop it. He

was angry not at anyone, since it was no ones fault but his own, but

he had no control over those outside this house.

His mom was still dressed in her business attire since she just got in

the door from work when David asked her into the kitchen. She cleared

her throat in preparation for breaking the silence. "We could move to

a smaller place?"

David noticed his girlfriend wince, the house was already becoming

cramped. "No, I don't think we can." He had to control his voice, or

it may tremble with anger.

Virginia, normally quiet about her boyfriend, added, "I agree. If

anything we need a larger house." The three of them nodded in

agreement.

Money had become a touchy subject in the last month and now things

were coming to a conclusion. It was more than just one overdue bill.

"How much do we have left over this month mom?" He meant, how much

after they just paid the mortgage and purchased food.

She was reluctant to answer, "Not enough."

It was Kelly that interrupted with a suggestion, she had been lurking

near the fridge listening. "Why not get a rich woman to join us?"

She meant, join her brothers harem.

He looked over in surprise at the suggestion, again enjoying his

sisters youthful strong naked body. David saw his mother nod to

herself a small smile coming to her lips confirming her son's own

thoughts. He turned to Virginia, "Do you know anyone that we could

approach?" She had grown up in a different class of people than David

or his family had and he suspected she would come up with the perfect

woman who could solve all there problems.

He saw her hesitation and guessed she did not want to add another

woman to his household. David know of her dominance in the house and

since she didn't take advantage of it, allowed it to continue. He

thought she was hesitant because she was worried about loosing her

role.

In fact he was wrong, she did not want to submit another woman to the

mental and physical torture she found herself in. "Its been a while

and I'm not sure of anyone that would fit."

Whatever the reason, her words were not believed. "Is Samantha out of

school yet?" Virginia nodded no, knowing he could not be stopped.

"Well have her come down to my lab as soon as she's here." He stood

up to leave, a new smile appearing on his face. "It may be fun having

another woman join us."

Kelly, ever the persistent and unsympathetic one asked, "Do you want

another girl or a old woman?" Her mom raised an eyebrow and David

laughed at his sisters blunt words. "We'll see."

The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXIII (Part 2)

The perfect woman was found, at least it sounded like the perfect

person to help with all their problems. The biggest problem was her

husband and family. Samantha, Kelly, and David had watched the woman

from a car while she shopped with a friend. The woman, Mrs. Gail

Deaumont, was smiling and generally looking like she hadn't a care in

the world. David appraised her, wondering at the things she would do

for him. She almost forty years old with auburn long hair and every

expensive immaculate clothing. Her face was attractive, but beginning

to show her age.

Kelly off-handily spoke about the woman as if she was already part of

their household. "Her legs are a bit thin but its not too noticeable

with her tiny waist. I wonder if she trims her pussy?"

Samantha, instructed to learn and tell David everything about Gail

also spoke, usually alternating with Kelly's foreword comments. "Jim

is her oldest boy, he is one year ahead of you in school David."

"Her breasts are kinda small..."

"Tony is her youngest, thirteen."

"... and that means her nipples are probably tiny."

"Mrs. Deaumont's husband retired a few years ago, and my mom says he

doesn't need to work because he's so rich."

"Do you like big or small nipples Davy?"

"They have two homes, one here on the mountain", that was the common

name for large expensive residences that overlooked most the town,

"and the other on the east coast somewhere."

"No matter." Kelly giggled. "I wonder what she tastes like?"

David interrupted, listening to both young woman, "What about her

daughter?"

Kelly smiled and also waited the answer. Samantha continued, "Her

name is Loni and she is some kind of swimsuit model in the city."

"And?" Kelly asked.

"She is nineteen years old but a bit snotty."

It was David's turn to snicker. No woman would resist him when he

offered them the nirvana of his experiment. He asked, his eyes not

coming off the woman across the road, "So how do we get her?"

Samantha was silent but not surprisingly Kelly had an idea. "We could

just grab her and give her some `Water'!"

It wasn't something he wanted to do, physically force a woman to do

what he wanted. There was no need, not with `Toilet Water' readably

available. "No. We have to give her the `Water' and have her come to

us."

Kelly looked disappointed, she probably thought they could do the

capture right away. It was Samantha that spoke up, "How do we give it

to her?"

"That's the hard part. What does she do Samantha?"

The young girl bit her bottom lip trying to remember all the

information she had found out about the upper class woman. "Mostly

she likes throwing parties. At least that is what my mom says." She

saw David's look of impatience. "Well she is on some kind of chairman

for a local charity, `Helping Hand' I think."

David started to smile.

"Don't you think her ass is a little flat Davy? Not like moms' at

all." David started to laugh at his sisters words.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXIV (Part 2)

Virginia hated what she was about to do, but she was also very excited

that she was going to enjoy the vial of `Toilet Water' in her coat

pocket very soon. It was always torture when she was in possession of

some of the addictive elixir and instructed to give it to someone

else. Though her boyfriend always rewarded her and she was the only

woman in the household that could be trusted with a closed vial.

The bus ride downtown lasted forever. And the five minute walk

afterwards felt like ten miles. The feather light vial felt like

twenty pounds.

She was admitted into the office by a faceless secretary and Virginia

sat alone for almost a minute before Mrs. Deaumont came in. The

almost- forty year old woman smiled hugely and closed the door behind

her then extended her hand. "Hello Virginia! Its been months since I

saw you. How is your mother?"

Virginia felt the water in her mouth dry up, "She is doing fine

Mrs. Deaumont."

"Oh, please. Your a woman now, please call me Gail." She sat behind

her desk.

It was time, as per David's command. Mrs. Deaumont was seated and

they were alone. Virginia pulled the vial from her pocket and opened

the top and allowed it to drop to the floor. Immediately she noticed

the scent and felt her excitement run through her veins.

"What can I do for you my dear?" Gail frowned and breathed deeply.

"Well, I thought I would see you about a job. mom told me to come see

you." That was a lie, but her own sister had suggested this when the

plan was given to Virginia.

"I see." Virginia shifted in her seat, her hands grasping the arms of

the chair attempting to continue with her current composure. Mrs.

Deaumont also shifted and the teen noticed one hand drop beneath the

edge of the desk top. "Well of course I can help you if I can.

Normally", she stopped and sighed deeply then shook her head and

continued, "I don't do the hiring." She stopped and it looked like

she was trying to collect her thoughts. "Actually dear, if you would

go see my secretary she will help you."

Gail was trying to get rid of the young woman, but this was also

according to plan. Virginia stood up then came to the edge of the

desk and leaned over. "Please Gail, don't brush me off like that. I

really need this job." She saw the middle-aged woman trying not to

look down the front of the loose dress of her friends daughter. David

knew that the scent of his experiment did away with a woman's normal

inhibitions about homo sexuality. It was simply the pleasure received

from another person that was important.

"Please go." She was starting too lose control, thought Virginia, the

"Water" has her.

"Please Gail, I'll do anything for this chance!" That was when the

very pretty young woman leaned the last six inches foreword and placed

her lips on Mrs. Deaumont's.

Gail had her eyes wide open looking with surprise at the young lady.

Yet, she didn't resist when those same lips opened enough for a warm

moist tongue to slip into her mouth. In fact the older woman heard

the moan of pleasure come from her own throat. Barely noticeable, a

hand also squeezed one of her small still firm breasts. It was

delicious and she couldn't stop the moan of pleasure that she emitted.

Virginia fought the urge and power of the scent and pulled away from

the woman. There was one more act to this play. "Is that what I have

to do to get the job?" Virginia started to unbutton the front of her

loose summer dress. Mrs. Deaumont could do nothing but breath deeply

and watch the slow sexy disrobing as the perfect body of the beautiful

woman came into view.

"No..." Is all that the woman uttered. But it held no conviction,

she didn't believe it herself. Virginia simply ignored it.

The dress dropped to the floor revealing the wonderful smooth

nakedness beneath. Virginia had worn no undergarments and so lost in

the new adventure of sensuality, that Gail hadn't even noticed. "I'll

do anything you want Gail." She stood for only a few seconds before

again advancing toward the desk. Gail was silent in surprise and

unexpected excitement. The teen leaned over and pressed a large firm

breast against Gail's mouth.

The dry hot lips found and enclosed about the nipple before strongly

sucking. Virginia moaned with pleasure. The play was over - now it

was time to just enjoy the conclusion. Laying almost upon the desk,

Virginia slid a hand down to the other side and easily found the rich

woman's smooth hairless thigh. The older woman had not been able to

control her own urges and pulled up the mid-thigh skirt to her waist

to get a hand at her own sex. This allowed access to her crotch,

which made it easy for the experienced bisexual young woman.

Fingers fumbled with the panties before finding the small crevice and

moisture than dripped from it. Virginia spoke into the auburn hair,

"I'm going to eat you until you scream Gail." The groan of

pleasurable expectation was her answer. "You'll never have an orgasm

like the one I'm going to give you." Virginia pulled her own chest

from the hungry mouth.

Gail's face was wet with her own saliva and she gasped out, "Yes.

Make me come. Lick me Virginia, please!" The young woman came around

the desk and turned Gail's seat until she faced her. "I haven't been

had a tongue inside me for years dear, I need it so bad." She was

practically crying for release and Virginia hated herself for what she

was forced into doing to this friendly woman.

Kneeling before that wide leather chair, Virginia licked her lips in

anticipation for what was about to come. Even without any scent in

the air, Virginia always fantasized about licking another woman.

Though she had never once considered Mrs. Deaumont in her fantasies.

She now regretted that decision.

With hurried anticipation, Gail wiggled her bottom and slipped her

unattractive panties down her long slim legs. They were forgotten as

soon as they dropped to the floor. The mother of three bit her bottom

lip while placing her legs over the arms of her large comfortable

chair. The skirt was already pulled to her waist so there was no

longer anything to cover her sex.

Virginia saw the woman's sexual moisture as it dropped down and

created a small pool upon the dark leather. The woman had trimmed her

pussy enough that there were no hairs around the outer lips. The teen

had become familiar with several different female sexual organs these

last few months and found herself admiring this particular one.

"Please Virginia - don't make me wait!"

The teen couldn't control her own urges and found herself diving head

first between those pale slim thighs. Her tongue made first contact

with the enlarged clitoris and Gail jerked up in her seat. "Yes!" It

also pushed the head out from between the smooth thighs.

The older woman seemed to melt into her leather office seat, her ass

almost sliding off the edge. Virginia was confronted by an

unrestricted view of the trimmed pouting lips before her. They seemed

to quiver with their own erotic breath.

Virginia's mouth was only three inches from that frothing center of

delight. And her eyes watched in delight as a thick drop of clear

liquid dropped from the bottom of the dark pink vaginal hole, past the

wrinkled anus, to drip slowing to the floor below.

That was too much, Virginia leaned forward to catch the next drop

before it landed upon the floor. Mrs. Deaumont actually squealed when

the young woman's talented tongue moved up directly onto her sensitive

virgin ass hole. Any sexual contact was stimulating when under the

influence. Gail suddenly reached out and grabbed the back of the

teens head and pushed her mouth right over her burning itching

clitoris. When finally the tongue touched it, Mrs. Deaumont exploded

in orgasm.

It had to be the best orgasm she had ever felt, her body rocked with

the explosion of sexual pressure letting go. Virginia's mouth moved

lower and she tasted the extra liquid roll down her throat. The

thighs closed over the long naturally curly hair, crushing the pretty

face against the vibrating sex.

No cock had ever given her this pleasure, nor had any of her own self

induced orgasms. It was something totally unexpected and very

pleasurable.

Virginia felt the muscles of the restraining thighs finally sag and

the legs fell back. The teen looked up and wondered if Mrs. Deaumont

had passed out. It didn't matter, her own senses were overtaken by

the smell that clouded her brain. She moved up and began to dive into

the older woman's clothes to get her tiny breasts. She wanted to

taste the nipples, feel them harden beneath her tongue.

The older woman was in no position to stop her. Virginia had her own

orgasm to enjoy, and Gail probably had at least one more. Already the

attractive woman seemed to be recovering, probably from the tearing at

the front of her clothes and the hairy wet pussy humping her leg.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXV (Part 2)

Gail knocked on the door and waited for an answer. What was she doing

here, why did she come? She had asked herself this several times

since Virginia had called her, requesting another more secluded

meeting. The first still amazed the forty year old woman, how she

orgasmed four times by that talented young lady. The things she did,

things she never once considered doing, caused her cheeks to blush

fiercely.

She told herself that this meeting would only allow her to let the

teen off easy, to let her know the last meeting should never have

turned out how it did. But, her memory of that first explosive orgasm

caused her knees to quiver.

When the door opened, Gail faced a mid-teen whom she had never seen

before. He held out his hand and smiled to the woman, "Please come in

Mrs. Deaumont." She saw that he was what her daughter would have

called a nerd, the description fit this young man.

"Yes." She stepped past the doorway and the young man. "Is Virginia

in?"

"No, but she will be back very soon." The young man smiled, "You are

early, couldn't wait huh?" He shut the door behind him.

"Pardon me?" She felt the blood rush to her face wondering if

Virginia had told anyone of what happened between them.

"Please come in. My name is David."

She nodded, then reluctantly told her name, "Gail."

"Anything to drink?"

"No thank you." She was lead into the living room and the young nerd

sat across from her staring intently at her body. When his eyes

wandered over her breasts and up and down her crossed legs, she

realized that he knew about her and Virginia. That knowledge caused

her blood to go cold.

"When did Virginia move here?" She looked about the room, attempting

to hide her embarrassment and to break the awkward silence. Also, she

wondered why that pretty young thing would move into a house like this

after living with at her parents large home for so long. It meant the

teenager was living a different life than the one she grew up in.

Then the smell hit her. Immediately it brought back detailed flashes

of her meeting with Virginia in her own office, and images of that

talented tongue pressed into her glistening folds came to mind.

Unconsciously she pressed her thighs together, trying to stifle the

tingling she felt in her groin.

That smell? She realized the only other place she had smelt it was in

her office almost a week ago, just before she had sampled the teens

wonderful body. It seemed to drift into her nasal passages and out

into every nerve of her body. Goose bumps appeared upon her skin, and

she trembled slightly. Her sex felt like it was flooding with hot

liquid and she knew the dampness would show through her panties and

slacks very soon. Again she squeezed her thighs together, but didn't

release them for a long time. What was that wonderful smell?

She saw David staring at her, smugly smiling, but otherwise just

looking at her impatiently. As if she was a painting or a flower

arrangement, she thought. When his eyes moved down to her ankles and

then started to move slowly up her slim legs she felt his gaze almost

as a physical touch on her skin. Her mind became clouded with her own

desirous needs and she could feel the beating of her heart quicken

when his gaze reached the spot between her legs.

Nothing could be seen of course, but she felt like she was totally

exposed to this nerd. Then the thought hit her, the nerd had a cock.

A hard throbbing teenage cock! She felt a hand grasping her left

breast and looking down realized it was her own hand. Her mouth was

watering just thinking about that cock between David's legs, only a

few feet from her.

"It would be easier if you took your clothing off."

Of course it would, she mentally snapped. Then she looked down and

found her trembling hands tearing at the buttons of her blouse. At

first she was shocked at the thought of disrobing now, here in front

of that young man. But at the same time, she felt a rush of

excitement. How deliciously wicked it would be to show the nerd her

body - he was probably a virgin and had never seen a real woman

before.

When she finally threw her bra off her shoulders, Gail felt the

tightening of her nipples. They were so hard, she thought, like

rocks. The warm air brushed against her skin but she still trembled.

"Now for the pants."

She felt foolish, of course the pants. When she was wiggling the

slacks past her hips, she wondered again why she was doing this. Then

Gail saw her own secretions on the inside of her panties, a long

thread still clung to her sex, and she knew why. Sex!

Gail wanted to taste herself, wondered if she tasted anything like

that sweet juice of Virginia's. When Gail spread her legs wide on the

couch and slid a finger down between the hairless lips of her sex, a

loud groan escaped from her. She lifted the digit up and hungrily

sucked herself from it.

"Rub yourself Gail."

She didn't even think about what he said, it was too logical. She did

exactly as he asked and moved her hand back between her thighs and

started to manipulate herself with familiar movements. The mother and

wife could hear her loud quick breath as she started to work upon

herself. Your a slut Gail, she thought, a gorgeous desirable slut who

needs to come.

After a few seconds, when her eyes moved back up to the young man.

She was surprised to see the nerd naked only a foot before her. His

cock was hard and pointed almost right at her face. That sight caused

her first small orgasm. It was too much, cunt, cock, it didn't

matter. The forty year old just needed something to get fucked with.

"Cock!" She mumbled. "Gimmie!"

David actually laughed when he stepped foreword and Gail opened mouth

about the hard organ.

Any thoughts of family, marriage, or even propriety were gone. The

mature woman was a slut, hungry for an orgasm and desirous for any

sexual stimulation at all. The nerd who had been sitting in front of

her was now the most handsome hunk she had ever seen, who's cock was

the hardest she had ever witnessed, and she would do anything that

combination requested.

Her mind only registered some of the words his mouth was saying. So

intent upon savoring the hard manhood in her mouth, that she almost

missed words like "slave", "toy", and "money". Later, when some of

her senses returned she would remember them. Now, she was a sexual

deviant. Something she had never been, nor would she have considered

it.

Gail barely noticed as the young man pulled her off the couch and

threw her on the floor. She didn't care, she simply watched that hard

cock of his and remembered the taste of him. Then he was close above

her, his cock slicing through her overheated folds until his pelvis

ground against hers. It was the first cock she has had in over a

month, and the feeling of him inside her was enough to bring about

another orgasm. Larger than the last, but not strong enough to dull

her senses. In other words she wanted, no needed, more of that cock.

She felt her legs pressed back, her knees against her tingling

nipples. She felt the cock driving her into oblivion and she was

conscious of her vulnerability in this position. And Gail loved the

feeling. Something was pressing into her anus, a finger pressed

passed her muscle and began to finger her in time with that driving

cock. The voice screaming for more, to be overwhelmed with cock, was

her own. Yet it only sounded like a distant echo.

That next orgasm was building and Gail felt her vagina quiver in pent

up expectation. All her senses focused upon that moment, when her

release would explode through her body. She needed it, wanted it to

happen, craved it. Nothing, not even the much loved cock inside her,

was as important as that next burst of sexual energy.

When it came, it rivaled the recent one with Virginia. She screamed

and tore at the cock welding teen above her. His cock didn't stop, it

just kept on pounding into her, back and forth even while her body

began to spasm and wildly gyrate beneath him.

The orgasm was huge but it the unending pleasure caused another to

explode right after, then another. Her body felt as if it floated

upon a sensual cloud of pleasure. After almost two minutes of

explosive orgasms and mind bending pleasure, Gail felt her body and

mind begin to slide towards sleep.

Nothing, not even the initial orgasm upon Virginia's tongue had given

her such pleasure. Her mind relived her own pleasure, even as it came

back to consciousness. Gail realized something was different, but

something was missing. It was the scent, the one she had smelt only

twice. Just a delicious smell that seemed to accompany the wildest

two fucks she had ever had.

Then she felt the pressure inside her rear passage and realized she

was upon her stomach. Her body felt slimy with perspiration, saliva,

and her own juices. And she couldn't phantom how much time had lapsed

since she awoke. But she knew the cock inside her ass was the nerds,

call it intuition. Gail always thought getting fucked in the ass

would be painful, that was why she never relented to her husbands

advances in that area, but she didn't feel any pain.

Slowly, the thick hard cock pulled out almost completely from her ass.

Then equally slowly, it again entered her. It was arousing, but not

nearly the heights of ecstasy that she had experienced earlier. The

feeling was also different than she would have imagined anal sex to

be.

Nerves in her body told her she still lay upon the floor, but a large

pillow was placed beneath her hips. Her legs were together with hands

prying her cheeks apart. Instead of the wanton feeling of wildness

and exhibition she felt earlier she now felt violated. The teenager

was fucking her ass, taking advantage of her when she was passed out.

She was old enough to be his mother, she raged.

"Her eyes are opening." It was a female voice and it caused Gail's

blood to freeze. Who's was it, it wasn't Virginia that much she was

sure of.

Behind her, David replied, "Good." A hand came down and slapped her

bottom very firmly. "Turn your head Gail."

Not knowing why she did, her half open eyes saw a woman a few years

younger than herself seated on the couch. The attractive, voluptuous,

woman was dressed in only stockings and heels. She looked familiar,

but was sure she hadn't ever met the woman. The sexy woman had one

foot up on the edge of the couch and the other over the arm. She was

slowly stroking her moist slit watching the action upon the floor

before her.

Gail felt embarrassment, and just a little anger at herself. How

could she allow herself to get into this position, she wondered. In

fact she came to see Virginia, but she as yet not shown up.

Her thoughts were interrupted when the sexy woman spoke to the

teenager behind her, "Come in her ass David."

The lewd words and their intent scared her, Gail tried to roll over

but strong young hands held her hips in place. She grunted when the

cock suddenly sped up for two strokes letting her know who was in

charge here.

"Get used to it Gail, my son loves fucking a woman's ass."

What was that she heard? Gail looked closer, and realized the reason

the voluptuous woman looked familiar was because she looked much the

same as the young man now fucking into her bowels. She couldn't help

but grunt again as David started to go faster, get rougher with her.

At least she knew what to expect now, that of the familiar male signs

of impending orgasm.

The hard cock went into depths that no man has ever been, as David

forced himself against the Gail's backside. He groaned even as the

hot seed was felt somewhere deep inside her body.

With her eyes still open she would see David's mother slid two fingers

into her slippery vagina and another finger into her own ass hole. It

was a family of debauchery, she screamed to herself. What was

happening now was practically rape. It certainly wasn't consensual

Gail thought.

The cock stopped spasming against the stretched muscle of her ass and

began to quickly shrink. David then pulled his weight from her and

went over to stand next to his mother. Gail watched in amazement as

the woman took the dirty soft cock into her mouth and closed her eyes

as she cleaned him. All the while her hands moved even faster inside

herself, masturbating without a care of who saw her.

The only thought Gail had was to get out of here, to leave as fast as

she could. David's eyes watched her with amusement as she searched

for her rapidly discarded clothing and began to dress. "Are you going

somewhere Gail?"

"I have an appointment, I'm late..." She found her panties and

grimaced at the large wet spot in the middle. Evidence of her own

earlier enjoyment.

Gail saw David reach over to the coffee table out the corner of her

eye. "Before you go I have to show you something."

"Maybe next time, I..." She sat upon the floor and was trying to

hurriedly get her pants up her still quivering exhausted legs.

"I think you'll find this interesting." When she looked up, she saw a

small vial in David's hands. "This is called `Toilet Water'". He

pulled the stopper and Gail suddenly stopped her frantic rush to get

her pants on. It was that smell! The one that precluded each of her

sexual abandon escapades. She breathed deeply and saw that David's

mother did the same, her mouth now off of the tiny soft cock and

watching the vial intently. "And you will become very familiar with

its scent - if you want too." He smirked.

That was the source of that delicious smell, the reason of her

excursions into debauchery and lust. She found herself desiring that

smell even while she moved a hand down to squeeze her own panty
covered crotch.

A door opened and two young teens stepped into the room, Gail noticed

that neither wore any clothing. She looked with lust at the youthful

tight bodies, and realized the girls must be sisters. They appeared

to be almost identical, except Gail guess one was a year or two older
than the other simply by the development of her youthful body. The

girls stood there in the doorway looking at the vial in David's hand.

"No one is forcing you to do anything you don't want Gail." She again

turned back to David at the sound of her name. "You can leave

anytime. Or you can stay." He motioned to the two young teens, "This

is Jill and Mary - they want you to stay."

The young girls knelt on either side of the middle aged woman and

started to kiss her. Mary started upon the tiny hard nipples, using

slow circular tongue kisses. Jill licked then kissed the older
woman's ear and neck. It was the first time Gail had felt two sets of

mouths upon her, and at that moment it didn't matter if was female

mouths or how old.

Gail allowed the two teens to push her back onto the floor, moaning in

enjoyment. Then another set of hands pulled off her panties and

another mouth pressed against her sex. David's mother hungrily tongue

fucked the older woman even while Jill and Mary worked upon the rest

of her body.

The mother and wife knew she wasn't going anywhere soon.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXVI (Part 2)

David greatly enjoyed his new toy, Gail Deaumont. It was like having

sex those first few months with his mother. He could see the guilt

and disgust in Gail's eyes before he opened a vial of his experiment

for her. Then she was much as his mother, unrelenting in her drive

for her desires to be fulfilled.

It was too easy, he thought.

Gail had not returned to his house for almost ten days after she

finally left. Yet, he was patient. Her desired addiction for more of

the drug would bring her back, it always did. When finally she came

to the door, much of her own inhibitions were gone - her week without

pleasure had made up any doubts she had in her mind. She desired the

pleasure the "Water" could deliver and there was only one place she

could get it.

Three times she had come after that, all within a week. She showed

surprise when she watched Samantha and Virginia copulate before her -

sisters and lovers. She also was fascinated at watching David with

his mother or sister. It was a new world to the high class woman, a

world that everyone knew she now belonged.

The money was easy. David had requested a large amount of money, and

she didn't bat an eye as she had turned over the trust to "Helping

Hand". It was worth hundreds of thousands of dollars. She was, of

course, rewarded with a full evening simply for her pleasure.

David smiled as he knocked upon the three meter tall doors. It was

something his sister once said, that their own home was getting too

small.

A gray haired older man answered, "Hello?"

"I'm David, to see Mrs. Deaumont please." The teenager felt like

laughing when he saw that the older man wore golf knickers.

He opened the door and then turned and bellowed up the curved stairs,

"Gail!" She appeared in seconds but her smile disappeared immediately

when she saw who it was.

"Honey you have a visitor." David guessed the old man to be her rich

husband. "Would you please come in." He closed the door behind

David. "I must be going. It was a pleasure to meet you," he held out

his hand, asking the youths name in a off hand way. David ignored the

question and simply shook hands.

The gray haired man frowned towards his wife who was silently

descending the stairs then turned and left through a large archway.

"A golfer huh?" David smiled, remembering those pants.

Gail ignored his question, "What are you doing here David?" He

shrugged and looked up to the doomed ceiling, three stories above.

"Please David my family is here." She was whispering.

A car purred out passed the front, and David guessed Mr. Deaumont was

on his way to play a round of golf. He had to say something he

thought, "I just came to look at how the other half lives."

"Well you've seen it. Now please leave." She moved towards the door

but David ignored her. "My god David, what am I going to tell Harry

when he asks who you were?"

"Tell him I'm your lover and master." David walked past the foyer and

into the arched room which looked to be an expensive living room.

Gail was white in the face and her voice quivered when she replied,

"I'll tell him no such thing." David knew that a woman in her place

was used to getting her own way, that she would not endanger the anger

of the single person who could give her pleasure or take it away. And

it all came back to that drug, the "Toilet Water".

David sat in a old rounded hard wood chair and surveyed the rest of

the room. Gail stood next to him, wishing she had never met the young
man or any of the females in his household. "This house is a bit of a

museum, but it does have plenty of space. Twenty rooms right?"

"Twenty seven rooms." David could see the woman's confusion and

enjoyed it.

"Could you get me something to drink Gail, a ice tea please?" It was

more of a command than a question and she immediately left to get it.

When she returned her knees almost gave way when she saw David talking

with her youngest son Tony. She took a deep breath and went forward

to hand her lover his drink.

"Well speaking of the devil."

"Hi mom."

She ignored David and smiled at her son, "Hello dear. Home early are

you." He still wore his soccer uniform, dirty from practice. "Maybe

you should go get cleaned up." It wasn't a question.

David watched amused as the forty year old tried to maneuver her son

out of the room, but a quick change of topic stopped the youths

movement from his seat. "Gail, I was just telling Tony a bit about my

family."

That was enough for Gail to loose her balance and she slowly dropped

to the wide couch next to her son. Her hand held the small of her

throat and she was nodding "no" towards David, hoping he would stop.

Tony missed his mothers ungraceful descent to the couch and turned and

asked, "Is that where you have been lately mother? We thought you

were at your charity."

She couldn't talk, David saw. "Tell your son about that show those

two girls put on for you last time." He waited but she wasn't about

to say anything.

"Your sisters David?"

"No. They are staying at my house - their mother abandoned them."

"That's terrible." The young man looked like he really cared. David

certainly didn't. "Are they talented actresses?"

David laughed, "Actresses - no, they don't act."

Gail interrupted strategically, "Tony would you like to have some ice

tea?"

"No thank you mom."

It was almost time, David pulled the vial from his jacket pocket and

place it on the table before him. He saw Gail notice it and her

posture and facial features change. She kept looking nervously at her

son, and angrily at David, but her gaze was mostly upon that pale blue

liquid and what it could soon bring her.

"Tony. Go up to your room."

"Mom, I was talking with David."

Her voice took on a dangerous edge, "Now son!"

He was about to stand and leave, as his mother had requested when

David spoke quietly. "No don't leave Tony, I want you to see

something."

"David no!" Her voice had a pleading quality to it that David always

enjoyed on a woman.

Tony saw the vial his mother was staring intently at. "What is that

David?"

"Tony, I have a secret. Can you keep a secret?"

"Sure."

"No, I mean, can you keep a very big secret from everyone even your

family?"

"Like mom?"

"No, she is part of that secret. I mean like your father, older
brother and all your friends. Do you think you could do that?"

"I guess."

Gail interrupted with a whispered plea, "David please?! Not here."

David nodded at Tony and motioned to the tiny vial between them.

"That is called "Toilet Water" and you can have any woman you want

with it."

"`Toilet' what?" Tony laughed, but soon stopped when no one else was

saying anything. He was only thirteen, even if he often felt much

more mature, his years didn't give him any experience in handling

awkward situations. "Your serious?"

"Of course. Ask your mother if it works?"

Tony turned to his mother and realized she looked scared but he hadn't

a clue from what, "It can't be true can it mother?"

Almost a minute passed until David spoke firmly but quietly to her,

"Answer Tony."

She immediately replied, "Yes its true. Tony please leave. For my

sake, please just go."

David again continued, "Do you know how she knows its true Tony?" He

nodded, uncertain of what was going on. "Because she's a woman and

that means she will do anything for what's in that vial."

David realized how strange this situation must feel to the young man,

only a few years younger than himself. Yet, it was fun watching how

the situation progressed. The tension in the room was thick, and

everyone knew it. Though Tony may not know why, he was certainly the

focus of it.

"Maybe I should be going." Tony stood up to leave and walked passed

his mother.

Just before he reached the arched doorway David spoke gently, "Your

mother told me about the panties." That froze the thirteen year old
in his place. "Its natural to be interested in your mother. Hell,

Gail is a very attractive woman."

Tony turned about, his face red with embarrassment. The panties that

David mentioned was something Gail had told David's mother when

comparing notes about their families. That a pair of used panties
were found beneath Tony's pillow, and they had semen stains upon them.

None in the room thought anyone else knew, especially Tony. It was

obvious that he thought it was a well kept secret of his.

The young man returned to his seat and quietly sat for a few moments.

Tony changed the subject back to the previous one, "This is all crazy.

How can something force someone to do something?"

"Oh, I didn't say force. In fact, they very much want whatever you

tell them. Isn't that right Gail?"

She could barely speak, so dry was her mouth. "Yes, that's right."

"Do you want me to open the vial Gail?"

"Yes." Again a whisper.

"Even with your own son in the room?"

The elder Deaumont turned to her son with a pained look then back to

the vial, and nodded. "Yes."

Tony, of course, didn't realize what that "yes" really meant. "You

mean if we open that glass thing mom will do whatever you say?" He

looked at her surprised, his mind wondering.

"In general yes. Isn't that so Gail?"

A mouse may have been louder, "Yes." She was every embarrassed and

also secretly excited to have that vial open.

"Like she will pretend she is a chicken or do silly tricks?"

David actually laughed, "I guess she would. But she won't be

hypnotized to do things unknowingly. She will be fully conscious of

what she does. In fact, she will very much want to do mostly

anything."

Tony still looked puzzled. "Like what?"

David thought for a few seconds then replied, "How would you like her

to hand you her panties right here and now?"

The young teenager was taken back and jerked his head towards his mom
but she forced herself to only stare at the vial. "You would do that

mom?"

"Yes."

"Yes what Gail?" Tony liked to push, to get the most out of his

woman.

"I would give you my panties if you wanted me too." She hadn't moved

her eyes, but all in the room could feel the brewing excitement in her

thirteen year old son.

His voice quickened as he asked, "Right now? You would take your

panties off and give them to me just like that?"

"Just like that."

David again interrupted, "Well not just like that actually. That vial

has to be open first." Now Tony looked at it with a new hunger.

The ultimate question, one that David had been expecting was asked,

"How? What's that blue stuff that would make my mom act like this?"

"Its kinda like a perfume I created. It stinks to you and me, but to

your mom it smells like nothing else she has ever known. It will make

her do whatever we wish. Act however we wish. And be whoever we

wish." David took a drink of iced tea, enjoying the tension in the

room. "Only one catch, your mother gets extremely excited when she

smells the `Toilet Water', and will do anything for pleasure."

Tony was swallowing constantly while looking from his mom to the

scent. "Have she tried this before?"

"You answer that Gail." David was enjoying himself immensely and

could not keep the smile from his face.

"Well mom, have you tried it before?"

"Yes Tony I have."

David added, "Several times also."

Tony sat back surprised and flabbergasted. Finally he asked, "Why are

you telling me this?"

"Because I need help. I need you to help me with my family Tony?"

"Help, how?" Gail also looked up surprised.

"Well, lets just say its more than one man can handle."

"You mean my mom?"

"Your mother, mine," Tony looked as surprised as Gail had that first

time when she realized the incestuous relationship David enjoyed, "my

sister, my girlfriend, and a few others."

It was too much for Tony and he simply sat there unbelieving, his

mouth hanging open. David thought better than telling him everything

he wanted, the youth had yet to be convinced it all was possible.

"Open the vial Tony and see that its all real." He looked at the vial

and at David but didn't move. "Maybe you should ask him Gail?"

After taking a large swallow to gain her composure and not to look too

anxious, Gail asked her son. "Open it Tony. Please!" This time,

that pleading voice David knew and enjoyed was used on her youngest

son. It was obvious the young man hadn't missed it either.

"You would really do whatever I ask mom?"

"Anything - just hurry honey!" She was biting her bottom lip, hating

David for bringing this encounter about.

That was when the young man reached out and grasped the vial. He

brought it up to his eyes and looked through it. "Nothing much to

look at."

David laughed, "And it stinks too."

"Open it Tony." Hissed the anxious woman.

Tony saw his mothers wide eyes as it never moved from the vial, and he

was watched her face as he pulled the stopper and let out the magic

that David and his mother assured him was in it. A part of him

thought this was all a joke, that they were playing with his emotions

somehow. People can't be controlled like that, the told himself.

Then he saw her eyes. His mothers eyes as she inhaled deeply, even

while he curled his nose at the stench of it. He saw how his mothers

face changed, how her body seemed to melt and get more relaxed and

something changed in that room.

"Well Tony, ask her." David was sipping his tea as if this was all

common place. Perhaps it was.

"Give me your panties mother?" Besides everything that had been said,

and all that he had heard and witnessed, Tony could not express his

astonishment as his attractive mother stood up and turned her back

before reaching up beneath her dress to pull her plain black panties
down her long slim legs. She turned back to her son and handed the

warm undergarments to him.

Tony could see the dark moisture from the crotch section, and the new

smell drift from the garment in his hand. It was a much better smell

than that coming from the vial in his other hand.

It was no joke.

The thirteen year old just sat looking from his mother to the panties
in his hand. The vial had fallen out of his hand to the Persian

carpet below. She stood shivering before him, as if waiting, forcing

herself to wait. That look in her eyes was new, a look that starred

intently at her youngest son.

"What else do you want her to do Tony?"

"You've done this with your mother?"

David laughed gently, "Oh yes. Much more actually."

"And she'll do anything I ask." He meant his mother.

"Yes she will. Look at her Tony, she can't wait for you to ask her to

do something." It was true. Tony's mother was rocking upon her feet,

both her thighs were rubbing together beneath her dark skirt and she

was gasping her hands together as if to control herself. "Will you

join me Tony? Will you help me do anything I want?"

Tony didn't respond immediately, his attention focused upon working up

the courage to tell his mother his next fantasy. Instead, Tony

reached out and grasped his mothers hands, one came away and held his.

He pulled her to him, and she dropped to her knees before her son.

Gail's eyes looking up with love and devotion, and unknowingly to

Tony, lust at her young son. The teen leaned over and was going to

kiss his mothers brow, instead her mouth moved and he found his lips

pressed to hers.

It was his first grownup kiss, and he was surprised when a tongue

slipped into his mouth and explored him brazenly. Tony pulled his

mouth from hers, and saw that she was panting and sweat was starting

to appear on her forehead. "I always imagined what you look like mom,

I've always had this fantasy of seeing you naked."

She nodded enthusiastically, "I want to be naked with you dear. I

want you to see me." Without standing or taking her eyes from his,

she started to unbutton and unzip her clothing. With trembling rushed

hands Tony watched as her body was quickly revealed to his gaze. She

was finally finished, and wore no clothing at all. "Do you find me

attractive honey? Am I as pretty as those young girls your own age?"

"God mom, your beautiful." He meant it. This was more than a

fantasy, this was a dream come true. He could see several thick drops

running down the insides of her thighs, almost as if she was peeing.

She saw his gaze and looked down. Gail smiled and took her son's hand

and rubbed it along one inner thigh then brought it back to her own

mouth. She sucked his fingers then licked his hand clean. "See how

excited I am Tony." She moved his hand back down onto her thigh, but

moved it upwards right into her over heated wet crotch. "See how much

I desire you baby?"

Tony was speechless.

Gail manipulated his hand until he felt his finger slid up and into

his mothers vagina. "Do you like mommy's cunt baby?" He simply

nodded as his mother moved his finger to a in and out motion within

her folds. "You can do anything you want with me Tony, just like

David said dear." Her hand caused Tony to jump as it suddenly grasped

the bulge in his soccer shorts.

"What is it you want mommy to do?" Tony looked into his mothers eyes,

his looking almost overwhelmed. Gail could not wait, the scent was

upon her and she needed to be satisfied, to enjoy even her own son.

She would have rather been alone with David, but no longer cared what

cock she used.

"What is it you fantasized about with mommy Tony? Have you thought

about fucking your mother baby? I'll do anything Tony. You can have

me any way you wish - my cunt, my ass, and my mouth are yours to use

dear!" Her voice was starting to quiver as her control was breaking

down.

Her words seemed to stupefy her son more, this was beyond his

imagination, beyond fantasy. Yet, his mother couldn't wait any longer

for an answer and moved forward and moved her face to his lap. Tony

gasped out as his shorts were pulled to the side and his youthful cock

sprung up and directly into his mothers hungry mouth.

It would be very much to take if Tony had been older with more

experience but that was not the case. The young teen had never seen a

naked woman before let alone felt a set of lips loving his hard cock.

So inexperienced was he, that he had only just started experimenting

with masturbation only months ago.

It took less than a minute before that hungry mouth and bobbing head

to receive the first shot of youthful come. Gail swallowed loudly and

she felt a small orgasm rock through her body simply from the

nastiness of the current situation.

Tony was breathing heavy and tore his eyes from his smiling hungry

mother. David lifted his glass to the young man in tribute and

motioned for him to continue.

Youth does have its benefits, which compensates for the lack of

experience. Tony was still hard. Gail would probably have sucked him

off again, so lost in her own enjoyment of that hard little organ that

she had lost a part of reality when the scent overtook her. Instead,

her own desire of enjoyment caused her to lift her face off her

youngest sons cock.

"Mommy wants that cock in me." She began to crawl upwards towards her

son, her legs straddling his. "Mommy wants you to fuck her like the

slut she is. Do you want to fuck mommy Tony?" He simply nodded, now

looking up into her smiling face.

It was an easy maneuver, his four inch cock was already aimed directly

upwards and Gail's sex was extremely wet. The combination made it

easy for her to lower her body with her son's, joining them. She

began to move up and down before him, her hands on his shoulders for

balance.

"Fuck mommy's cunt!" Was her litany, as she repeated herself numerous

times.

Tony saw her small conical breast moving before him and took the

initiative and inhaled one tiny pointy nipple. "Yes! Suck me Tony."

She grabbed his head and held her son to her breast while he sucked,

licked and played with his mother's nipples.

David watched silently, amused at the outcome of his maneuvers. He

contemplated taking Gail's bottom when she knelt before her son, but

he let this encounter to the young man - since it was his first. From

his vantage point, it looked like Gail was raping her own son. So

driven so enthusiastic and so slutty were her actions. Her tall thin

body was larger than her youngest child and with her straddling him

the way she was she looked like a amazon fucking her captured male.

The boy was not long in coming again, everything that had happened

since he got home was simply too much for his immature sex drive. His

mother felt the hot seed enter into her, and it caused another small

orgasm to rock her body.

David knew when she came, and he knew it wasn't going to satisfy the

forty year old addict. Gail loved to come, the bigger the better.

The hard cock didn't soften again, and Gail simply continued to bounce

upon it. Her eyes were closed and she focused her attention on her

filled cunt. She needed that orgasm, she deserved it. The mother and

wife used her youngest son mercilessly, or rather his young cock. It

didn't matter who's cock was inside her right then only that it was

hard and inside her body.

Gail's next orgasm was building, and she knew it was going to be a big

one. Not the overwhelming orgasm that David had given her, but big

enough to satisfy her. At least for a moment. She began to mumble

out, "My baby boy...", over and over. In her drug induced state, the

incest quality of this encounter was in itself stimulating. It was

nasty and degrading to the woman, that was what excited her. That her

young son found her attractive and desired her very much was also very

stimulating. Her age did matter to her and she could still excite a

thirteen year old, even one of her own family, she felt a certain

twitch deep inside her - down between her legs.

Tony's face was crushed between her breasts as her arms encircled his

head. His mother squealed and her whole body vibrated as he wondered

if he hurt her. Then after a few seconds she fell to the side, onto

the couch - her body and face looked tired. This movement disengaged

her body from his slimy cock and she lay upon her side facing the

inside of the couch. Her eyes looked into his but she didn't say

anything.

It was David who spoke after so long, "Your not finished yet Tony."

The little glistening cock was obvious as it stuck out from his lap.

"But mom looks tired. What happened?"

"She had an orgasm - kinda like your orgasms." David pointed to the

white ass on the edge of the couch. "Fuck her in the ass Tony - she

likes it."

This surprised the youth, "Her `ass'?"

"Yup. She did say you could have her ass, her cunt and her mouth.

You've had two out of three, its time for the last."

"But she's tired."

"She is. One way to get more energy into her is to get her excited -

a cock is probably the best way." Tony looked convinced but looked

down into his mothers eyes but she only stared back soberly.

The young man pushed her one draped leg off his lap and moved about,

kneeling on the floor behind his mothers bottom. He aimed his short

cock between those cheeks and pushed - it pressed into her thigh. It

took several moments of fumbling and poking before the head of his

cock pressed against a hard but moderately yielding muscle. He put

more pressure in the push and suddenly felt the head of his cock slip

past a ring of muscle before the rest of his manhood easily slid into

her.

Tony looked triumphantly over at David and said, "I'm in."

"No mercy Tony, fuck her hard and fast." The boy started, his hips

jack-hammering pressing her pelvis against the smooth white skin of

his mothers buttocks. "Come in her ass Tony. Come in her ass and we

have a bargain. Think of it like a handshake." Tony smiled at the

joke even while David laughed maliciously.

The teen started grunting before he let go of his seed flooding his

mothers bowels.

The deal was struck.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXVII (Part 2)

Six weeks. That's how long it took before David and his family to

move into the Deaumont house. Six weeks is what it took for

Mr. Deaumont to move out east to his other house. Six weeks before

Gail Deaumont was officially separated from her surprised husband.

The kids were given the choice, Tony stayed with his mother, the

eldest choose neither since he simply left for college a few weeks

early, and the daughter lived in the city. Mrs. Deaumont, of course,

chose to stay in the house with David and the "Toilet Water".

Her plans were not exactly what David had in mind.

The forty year-old woman was rather depressed when David wasn't around

- then she put on an air of a "slut". She was a smart woman and knew

where her enjoyment came - Gail also knew she was addicted to "Toilet

Water" and couldn't phantom what life would be like without it.

Weeks before, she was a rich and powerful woman. On the board of two

corporations and head of several limited companies. Her life had been

pleasant, not great, but the alternative had always scared her. She

had grown up in a trailer park and since she left, Gail swore she

would never return. Now, she wondered if that life was not so bad

compared to her current one.

She silently watched as David transformed her house into his own

sanctuary for his harem of sexual drug addicts. The master bedroom,

her old room, was now David's. While she was placed in a room next to

David's mother. Gail participated in and watched as the lovely

females of the house degraded themselves and contested for David's

attention.

At night, it was the worst, she never slept alone. More times than

not, she slept with her youngest child - Tony. It didn't matter to

the youth if the scent of the drug was in the air before he enjoyed

his mother - he was very selfish in his enjoyment with her. And when

she wasn't under the influence, she felt repulsed at the intimate

touches and demands of her son. It was obvious to Gail, that Tony

enjoyed her own body even more than any of the other ladies in the

house, that David allows him access too. He too must feel the raw

passion of the sinful act of having sex with a parent. Gail also

hated herself, because, when she smelt the drug, she too desired that

same raw passion.

The only female that Gail Deaumont felt any bonding or attraction too,

outside of a drug induced state, was Virginia. At first she blamed

the older teen on the initial seduction and deceit that was used to

get her to this place in time. Soon, after spending time with David's

"family" she soon learned just how little a choice Virginia really

had.

Virginia was obviously the favorite of the other girls and even with

David. She never abused this power or hurt any of the other ladies in

the house. She would approach David with concerns of any female in

the household, and her voice was often listened too. She was a

intelligent and very attractive woman, easily the prettiest in the

house, who used her power within the "family" sparingly.

Gail often found herself with Virginia when they initially setup the

household. Who slept where, etceteras. They spent time together and

they easily found a compatriot in the other and opened up. They even

became lovers.

Perhaps Gail only needed someone to cry with or to be able to talk

too, and she would never have guessed it would be a eighteen year old
that comforted her. That consoled her with tender touches and kisses.

Virginia was the dominant of the two, taking the pinnacle role. It

was how Gail wanted it - she deferred to the teenager in all things.

It was the first woman Gail could ever say she loved, in a deep

emotion way. Virginia was also her first lesbian lover. And she

found this relationship often more fulfilling than the hardest cock.

Whenever they could meet in private, Gail was always ready to make

love if Virginia wished it. Which she rarely did. Their lifestyle

was based upon sex, and simply having time to cuddle and talk was

often the outcome of the more intimate moments.

"Hey mom!" Tony threw the door to her room open, ending Gail's somber

thoughts. "David wants to talk with us downstairs." She faked a

smile for her son and rolled off her bed.

Tony grabbed her ass as she walked by and asked her, "Nice outfit mom.

Meet me in my room after David is finished huh?"

She forced a smile and replied, "Sure Tony."

"And wear the black stockings." He followed her down the stairs and

into the large study where David awaited them.

Normally, Gail would be very embarrassed to be dressed in only a see

through teddy, as she was now, but after all the things she had done

with every person in the house - her naked body was the furthest thing

she needs to be embarrassed about.

David appraised her as she normally did any female in his house.

Mother and son took a seat next to each other facing David's, her

ex-husband's, desk. Tony casually reached over and laid his small

hand upon her thigh, stroking his own mothers smooth skin as David

looked up from some books he was searching in.

"Tell me about Loni?" He directed his question at Gail.

It was enough for the mother to begin quivering and her mouth dried up

in seconds. She felt she knew the reason for this question and in the

last month had dreaded this moment. Her daughter was a very

attractive young woman. And after David's own actions towards his own

family as well as others, she felt it was only a matter of time before

he focused his attention on her daughter.

David smiled, knowing her thoughts. "Your right Gail, I want her to

join our little family here." Tony squeezed her thigh firmly, but she

only looked down at the floor before her. "Tell her Tony." David sat

back and listened.

"It was my idea mom." That caught her unaware, and she turned her

head to look at her son in disgust. From David, she expected such

actions and thoughts, but from her own son it surprised her. She

thought his incestuous lust was fulfilled by her own body. Gail was

wrong. "Remember how I used to have a pair of your panties under my

pillow - well I also had another pair of Loni's under the bed."

She finally found the voice to speak, "Why Tony? My god she is your

own sister - why can't you be satisfied with just me?" It was a son

she didn't know, one that was being molded through his early teen

years by David. A young man who delighted in his sexual contests with

females of his own family.

He looked a little angry at the question. "Because I can mom. With

David's help I can have any woman I want too, fuck any woman I feel

like fucking, and she'll even beg for it. Just like you did,

remember?" She turned back to staring at the floor and felt her face

blush. She remembered - everything. In fact she couldn't stop

remembering.

David broke the heavy silence, "And you will be the one that brings

her into our family Gail."

She looked up in disgust and saw that there was no amusement in

David's eyes, he was quite serious. Gail looked over into Tony's eyes

and saw the hungry look of his, that same look he often used upon her

before his lust was sated. She attempted to suppress her bodies

shivering.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXVIII (Part 2)

Loni Deaumont came back home, to the house she spent most of her

childhood in. It was rarely a warm and inviting place but it was

always safe. These last two years she wanted to come back more often,

as a sanctuary from those people that wanted to use her beauty and her

talent as a model. She rarely did, her father was the one that told

her she must be strong if she wanted to succeed in the business world.

A month ago, it was her father that told her of the separation of her

parents. It didn't even surprise her. Her parents barely spoke these

last few years, and she wondered if they even shared the same bed.

She was also glad that her mom was able to keep the house and her

freedom. It was about time her mother got what she deserved.

The house looked busy, there was four vehicles parked out front and

many of the lights were on. Perhaps the separation had brought out

some of her mothers wild side, Loni thought with amusement. As if her

reserved mother had a wild side, she laughed to herself.

The model found the front door locked, and frowned when she was forced

to ring the bell. It opened in a few long seconds. Before her stood

a young woman, mid teens, vaguely familiar to the nearly returned

woman.

"Hello, you must be Loni. Come in please, we have been anxiously

awaiting you." The door was opened wide and Loni was surprised when

she saw the young woman who opened the door was not wearing anything.

Then a faint smell struck her.

"Oh, just leave your bags in the foyer. You were a little late so we

started without you. David said it wouldn't make a difference."

The very pretty teen saw the wide eyed looked that Loni gave her and

ignored it until finally the question was asked, "Who are you and what

are you doing here?"

"We met once, at one of your moms parties - I'm Samantha." Loni

vaguely remembered her. "And I live here with David and your mom."

"Pardon?" It was a bit of a surprise to the woman, as was the fact

she was having a discussion with a naked teenager. Perhaps her mother
had gotten involved with a bunch of naturalists, she wondered. And

who was David, a new boyfriend? And what was that delicious smell?

Samantha again began to lead the woman through the house, "So your a

swimsuit model?"

Loni answer almost mechanically, "Yea, for almost a year now."

The smell was rapidly getting stronger and Samantha began to descend

down into the basement. "Why are we going downstairs - there's

nothing down there but storage?" It wasn't the homecoming she had

expected.

"David had it remodeled before we moved in." It was dark going down

the stairs but Loni hadn't seen a light switch to turn on.

The scent became almost like a wave when a wide wooden door was

opened. Her knees almost gave out and she felt her body shiver with

unwanted excitement. Then Loni heard a sound, like moaning. It was

the unmistakable sound of a woman at the height of pleasure. A sound

Loni hadn't heard in her presence for some time - being busy working

and between boyfriends these last few months.

Samantha held the door wide as Loni was drawn forward. She wanted to

run, felt that she should run away as fast as her legs would go, but

she knew she wouldn't. It was like an invisible cord attached to her,

pulling her through the doorway. Loni realized with a start, that the

invisible cord was connected to her vagina and that was what lead her

forward.

The large open room was uncomfortably warm and dimly light with

several candles. Had her mother joined some kind of cult Loni

wondered, not for the first time. Seated on a large wooden chair,

almost a throne, was a young man with glasses. He was also completely

nude. Before him, upon several cushions, lay Loni's mother.

She was naked as the rest, her middle-aged body still comparable with

Samantha's or even her own. Her mother was laying upon her back with

two young females against either side. They looked like twins, as

those two young naked girls used their tongues and lips upon the

sensitive skin of the elder Deaumont. Loni watched as one of the

young teens fingers traced from her mothers navel down to the sparse

growth between her legs. The same finger suddenly disappeared between

the shadows between those pale thighs and the older woman moaned

louder this time, her back arching up with pleasure at the intrusion

into her sex.

Loni felt hands upon her own body and looked at the owner, it was

Samantha and another teenager about the same age. They gently but

quickly pulled off all her clothing, even while Loni couldn't tear her

eyes from the sight of her mother and the two young teens.

Afterwards she would remember this moment and think that she was of

two minds. One, tried to get her to speak up to yell at her mother to

stop this insane coupling and to push the female hands from her own

body. The other watched the lesbian lovers with interest and desire,

wishing it was her in her mothers place. Her mind wasn't her own,

rather her overheated sex controlled her so much that she discovered a

longing to replace that young woman's finger with her own. The

thought, when it first came to her, excited and scared her.

The model's world was gone, nothing mattered but this dim room and the

sight of her attractive mother with those two girls. She barely

noticed a long curly haired beauty crawl up between the man's thighs

and immediately begin to suckle his cock. Or the other naked females

in the room and how they mirrored her own mothers enjoyment.

The hands had disappeared from her body and she realized the fingers

manipulating her breast and clitoris was her own. She never bothered

to stop, instead began to earnestly touch herself as only a woman can

enjoy her own body.

Like some unspoken command, the two young teens beside her mother sat

up and went over to the side to enjoy each other. The elder Deaumont

lay groaning with need and withering with expectation when Samantha

appeared behind Loni and pushed her forward.

At that moment, it didn't matter who lay upon those thick pillows,

only the urge to press her tongue deeply into those glistening

feminine folds. But Samantha brought her to the edge of the pillows,

her shins touching her mothers toes on the right foot, when she was

held back from continuing. This time it was Loni's need that caused

the groan to escape her lips. She needed to lick that woman's sex, to

tongue her mothers vagina.

The other teenager, the one that helped Samantha disrobe her, moved

forward and knelt on the pillows next to her mom. A two foot pink

pole was unceremoniously inserted between those widely stretched

thighs. Loni's mother went wild, squealing and wiggling wildly as the

teenager moved the imitation phallus back and forth inside her mothers

body.

Samantha then lead her charge up upon the cushions to straddle her

mothers thighs. Hands held Loni's hips and she moved when they

directed her down. Other hands aimed the other end of the phallus

upwards between the slim attractive model thighs. Loni echoed her

mothers enjoyment when she felt the thick cock head enter into her own

body.

Loni realized there were no longer any hands on her or her mother.

She squatted over her naked mother with a thick member between both

sets of female lips. Loni moved down until she was in a sit up

position above the groaning woman below her then she lifted her hips.

It was a masculine position and Loni loved the feeling it gave her,

like she was fucking her own mother. While it was both ladies that

felt a cock inside them, it was Loni that controlled the movement of

the thick plastic phallus. She looked down into the face of pleasure

as her mother looked up into her own. She wondered if she looked so

lost in pleasure, so excited that even the thought of lesbian incest
didn't even matter?

When the elder Deaumont began to grunt, Loni knew her mother was about

to orgasm and doubled her efforts as to match her mothers orgasm with

her own. The two Deaumont females began to orgasm almost

simultaneously before collapsing in each others arms.

It was a quiet moment as both ladies breathed heavily into the others

ear. Both arms held the sweaty skin against the other and Loni felt

renewed desire at the contact. The phallus was still inside both of

their bodies and every twitch of a vaginal muscle was felt by the

other. Loni missed the words that came quietly from her mothers lips,

"I'm sorry Loni, I didn't want this!" But at almost the same moment,

someone had come up between the two sets of legs and pulled out the

pink double headed cock causing Loni to focus back to her sex.

A finger pressed into her, and by her mothers gasp beneath her, Loni

guessed the same was happening to her. It was a small finger, and

Loni didn't care whom it belonged just that it moved deliciously back

and forth inside her sensitive folds. She felt a desire and moved her

mouth against her mothers, it was received earnestly. Tongues dueled

and lips smashed while both ladies continued to get finger fucked.

It was only a few moments after the first orgasm when Loni realized

her mother was having another, though smaller, orgasm. God she wished

she could come that quickly, she thought enviously. When her mother
finished screaming into her own daughters mouth, hands pulled upon

Loni's hips. Those same hands pulled her off her comatose mother and

onto her back beside her mom, just after the fingers pulled from her

sexual hole.

In her heightened state, she thought the young man descending towards

her looked familiar. He positioned himself much the same as she did

above her mother only several minutes ago before plunging his hard

cock into her recently well used sex. She looked up into those

familiar eyes and thought the young man looked like her brother, but

she thought that just could not be possible. Wasn't her brother just

entering into puberty or something, she wondered.

If not for her heightened state, Loni would not have enjoyed the young
man's small penis as it pounded and out of her body. She looked back

over at her mom and saw that she was laying upon her side masturbating

to the sight of her daughter with the young man. It caused a jolt of

excitement to run through her body knowing that her own mother was

witness to this nameless fucking machine between her spread legs. He

certainly had the energy of youth, thought Loni, amused.

When she felt a familiar wash of warm liquid filling her up and the

young man above her grunt and become tense, Loni again orgasmed. It

wasn't a large or exhausting orgasm but one that kept her fulfilled

and wearing a pleased smile.

Time became a blur to the model as the teenager pulled away from her

and her own mother crawled up between her thighs. She thought, but

wasn't sure in her current state, that her mother began to lick and

suck at her vagina. Her hands pushed her daughters legs back until

the knees pressed against her small firm breasts. A tongue dived and

lips sucked out the thick hot man-cream for several minutes. Loni

felt her body beginning to respond and she barely noticed Samantha had

begun to suck upon one of her small pointy nipples. Another mouth

sucked upon her other breast, the other teenager who had undressed

her.

Perhaps she had another orgasm, perhaps she simply fell into an

exhaustion and didn't notice anything for several minutes. Until that

same young man came up to her head, his eyes looked down with

amusement and Loni then realized it was indeed her brother. She

thought she should feel disgusted by what she did with him, but with

the attentions of the other three women she didn't even care. Tony

knelt on either side of his sisters pretty face and lowered his balls

into her slightly open mouth.

Loni opened and took his nuts into her mouth, one at a time. She

sucked and savored the young man balls while she realized another

woman was sucking his small penis back to its hard state. Catching

glimpses of the sight, she saw it was her mother that was doing the

mouthing of the thin shaft with as much enthusiasm as she had used

sucking the come from her daughters used cunt.

Again, Loni didn't care. Time blurred and she found that she lay

intertwined with five females, one which was her mother, and her

brother. She was the center of attention, with multiple lips,

fingers, tongues, and cunts touching her intimately everywhere. Loni

enjoyed several smaller orgasms before her brother again climbed

between her legs. He immediately started to slam back and forth

inside her. Even with its small size, she felt another tiny orgasm

approaching. Then she realized what came of her mother as a wet

vagina slowly descended towards her mouth.

That was the last Loni remembered before she awoke later. The sun was

streaming into the room as she felt the soft clean quilt covering her

long limbed naked body. The young woman realized she lay alone in one

of the rooms in the house. Was it all a dream, she thought? It was

too outrageous to be otherwise, yet it would have been delicious if it

had been real. She hadn't felt this good in years, before taking on

the responsibility of her own life and moving to the city.

"Good morning Loni." She quickly turned her head and gasped when she

realized who it was. It was the man from her dreams, the one seated

on the throne with that beautiful brunette sucking him. "You look

wonderfully rested this morning."

She covered her tiny breasts with the quilt and gasped, "It wasn't a

dream was it?"

He snickered, "No Loni, it wasn't. Every enjoyable moment was all

real."

Loni felt the blood drain from her face as she remembered just a few

of the things she had done. "My mother!"

"She is sleeping soundly right now, getting back all her energy she

used last night with you."

She realized he was dressed in only a thick white terry cloth robe.

"Your David aren't you?" He nodded and sat down on the edge of her

bed. Loni wanted to be alone, but her mind flooded her senses with

erotic images from last night. "And my brother?"

"You exhausted him last night, he's probably sleeping right now also."

She breathed deeply to try and control her composure. "Please leave

me alone now."

"Well that's is what I came to talk to you about." She sighed,

knowing she wasn't about to be left alone. Loni wanted to cry, but

she wasn't going too with this geeky teenager in the room. "I thought

I would come wake you up and answer all your questions." He then

smiled hugely and continued, "Then I thought I'd fuck you." It was

spoken so calmly so rationally that Loni thought she must have been

mistaken at with his words.

She knew she hadn't.

Instead she tried something that usually worked with every man who she

had known, she got angry. "Get out! Get the fuck out of here. Leave

me alone you fucking pervert. I don't believe your nerve...", she was

puzzled at his amused look and the fact that he had even moved an

inch.

"Do you have any questions or are you just going to yell some more?"

She felt like her head was going to explode with pressure, but bit her

tongue. It appeared anger would not get anything resolved. "That's

better. Just for that little outburst, my first fuck is going to be

in your ass."

She opened her mouth to renew her shouting but he simply continued,

"What is it you wanted to know first? How you ended up fucking your

mother and brother in front of an audience."

That shut her up, his blunt words were correct, though she was only

remotely conscious that she had a audience last evening. "What

happened to me, it was like I was a different person or something."

David smiled knowingly then pulled out a small vial and Loni took it

from him. "Inside that is the answer to everything that you did. Did

you notice that you enjoyed every second last night?" She felt her

face again blush. "That anyone could have done anything to you and

you would have begged for it?"

She nodded, it was all true. And that scared her immensely.

"It's called `Toilet Water' and its something I made for Chemistry

class. Basically its a highly addictive drug that affects a females

mind and body until she can't control herself. In effect its an

aphrodisiac of huge proportions."

"So I couldn't have helped myself last night? It wasn't my fault?"

"Of course it wasn't anyone's fault - but you could have said no and

left the room if you wanted to. You didn't and loved every second of

what happened. In fact you want it to happen again don't you?" She

shivered and turned away as he started to laugh. "I bet your cunt is

getting wet just thinking about it?"

It was, Loni realized with disgust.

"The only way it will happen is with that." He pointed to the tiny

vial in her hands. "Open it and see if its true."

She threw it back to him and shouted, "Fuck you pervert. I don't want

to ever repeat what happened last night." She shivered, remembering

and knowing her own words were false. Yet, she wasn't about to allow

some dorky nerd to tell her how to act. "Whatever is in that bottle

could never cause me to do those things."

He tossed it back to her, "Open it and prove me wrong."

She grasped it and was about to pull of the cork stopper when she

looked up into David's eyes. Was it all true, would she do anything

if she opened this bottle, she wondered?

He suddenly laughed, "Open it or my cock in your ass won't feel near

as good!"

Just to prove to him, and probably to herself, that she couldn't be

controlled she opened it.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXIX (Part 3)

Tony held back the retort to David's latest command. It was

ridicules, Virginia already held too much power, he had always

thought. Instead of commenting, he simply brought up the glass of

wine and took a long slow slip. He realized he more frequently had to

bite his tongue when it came to some of the things David wanted done

with his Family.

"Have it taken care of will you Tony?" David looked wasted, half

asleep with large dark bags under his eyes and the whites of his eyes

red. It wasn't a new look for him, this was one of his better

conditions.

Like a baron of old, David simply sat back and let others do his work

for him. His most trusted aid, Tony Deaumont, had faithfully done

everything asked of him these last several years. He, of course, was

well rewarded.

"Sure David." The older man pushed his trembling body upwards off the

huge leather seat his hands holding himself steady with the top of the

large desk. Even this early in the morning David was drunk, barely

able to walk.

While the ladies of his family were addicted to 'Toilet Water', David

had become addicted to alcohol. Tony didn't approve, but of course

never said a word.

It had gotten to the point that he had trouble performing with any of

the ladies and often resorted to more imaginative and sometimes

impossible requests and demands. Thankfully a few in the house knew

how to handle the head of the Family, to either work hard to get him

sexually appeased so he fell asleep or to give him more alcohol so he

fell asleep. Either way, everyone, including Tony, were given respite

from his demands when in this condition.

And more importantly, Tony was in complete autocratic control when

David was inebriated.

Tony put down his wine goblet and stood to help his friend and

compatriot. A arm about his thin shoulder was enough to hold David's

light frame. He started to lead him out of the room, and back to his

bedroom.

David surprised Tony with a question, "What we did was okay wasn't it

Tony?"

"'Okay', how?" It was a broad question.

"I mean the 'Water'?" This revealed a previously unseen streak of

guilt perhaps even compassion. It disgusted Tony, but he never said a

word.

Out of the double doors, a unnamed slave quickly moved before them to

clear the way, and down the hallway to David's room they slowly went.

His room used to be on the top level, in the master suite, but with

his drinking it was nearly impossible to get him upstairs. "Yea, we

are doing great David."

David nearly dropped to the hardwood floor when his feet slipped on

the large throw rug beneath him, only Tony's strong arms held him up.

The slave looked startled when her Master nearly fell but beamed with

pride when he was saved from his fall. Tony barked at her, not being

able to remember her name, "You, cunt!"

"Master!" She came scurrying to his side, anxious to help.

"Get Mary to attend David right away and then send for Gail."

"Right away, yes sir!" She was very enthusiastic. And with a very

attractive round ass thought Tony, cataloging her for a future

evenings tumble.

Mary, Mrs. Wilson's cute daughter, had become David's nurse, of sorts.

Tending to his private needs with compassion and perseverance that few

could command.

Virginia came walking through an arch way towards them, dressed

impeccably and still the most attractive woman within David's Family.

"How are you David?"

"He's sick." Barked Tony. "I just sent for Mary."

Virginia nodded, understanding perhaps more than any other, then moved

to open the final doorway into David's room.

Tony eased David down into his huge very soft bed. It appeared that

he was already asleep, his eyes closed and his body limp. Tony turned

towards Virginia, the only woman in the family that Tony was not

permitted to touch, and barked, "David wanted to put you in charge of

the family sluts."

"Against your wishes."

"Against my wishes, yes."

Virginia always controlled her disgust of the younger man, the only

other male in the family other than David, at his lack of feelings

towards anything but himself. By putting her in charge of the ladies

of David's family it simply made official a position she had taken

years ago, when all the females looked to her for guidance and wisdom.

It also gave her the power, nearly at Tony's level as head of the

Family, for the direction and decisions took. This gave her the power

to do as she wished.

"I sent for your slut Mary." Again a small nod. Years ago, after the

accident, Virginia found compassion and gentleness with the, then,

young girl. They had shared their bed and their love for all this

time since.

Still tiny in frame and cute of face, Mary came rushing into the room.

"Oh Master," she bent down and brushed a lock of dirty hair from

David's face with extreme gentleness.

All had thought him asleep but David opened his eyes a crack and

lifted his head, "Mary dear, get me a bottle will you?"

"Certainly Master," she began to remove his clothing, "but first a

quick sponge bath and a few mouthfuls of food." Mary looked up at her

lover and asked, "Is Gail available?"

Intercepting the question, Tony growled, "Yes you cow, my mother has

been called!"

David started to cry, with tears rolling down his cheeks he tried to

hide his face in his hands as sobs overcame him.

Gail Deaumont appeared at the door and came rushing in. Years older
than when David had first initiated her into the Family, she dressed

as she did back then. She wore a pale pink teddy, stockings, garters

and heels. She looked like some old whore, and she was.

Knowing why she had been called she came over and lay next to David,

her lips kissing his hands over his face. "There there darling, I'll

kiss it all better."

"Oh!" He moved his hands and reached for her old body. The two

embarrassed passionately and their tongues fondled in the air between

the open mouths.

Tony nodded disgusted, even he no longer found his mother attractive

enough to bed, turned and stalked out intending on finishing his days

business so he could attend to some pleasurable enjoyment.

Virginia watched silently while Mary prepared a bowl of water and rang

the kitchen for a bowl of broth, both for David. The tall very sexy

woman watched with pity when David slid a hand between Gail's old
wrinkled thighs, anxious to get at her sex. She understood what was

happening to David, her Master. Most probably would understood,

except perhaps Tony who could care less.

It was the accident, the one that had killed both David's mother and

his sister Kerry. The police report stated their car swerved over

into the oncoming traffic and a semi trailer. Virginia guessed Kerry

was making a fuss and attacking her mother with hands and mouth,

anxious for more pleasure even while the elder drove.

It had destroyed David, both emotionally and intellectually. He

didn't blame himself for the accident, though perhaps he should she

thought, but he did blame himself for forcing them into a life they

may not have wanted to lead.

Other than David and Tony, Virginia knew the most about 'Toilet

Water', though not enough to create any, and knew that it caused any

woman that inhaled its strong odors to become its slave. Without

exception. Yet it also caused that woman's desire for its stench to

make her act different than another woman. Virginia guessed it was

something to do with the woman's original personality, one that simply

shaped itself to the situation that it was forced upon. Some woman,

when under the direct influence of the 'Water' became docile, some

submissive and others like excited children. It was a personality

strain that only seemed to appear when induced by the drug.

David's desire for Gail was a part of that guilt. It was also a part

of his love and continuing desire for his mother. When drunk, David

mistook Gail for his mother. Possibly the only time he was able to

get excited, even then it was rare, was when he was with his 'mother'.

Virginia felt pity for the man she called Master but she still felt

the old hatred burning within her.

Gail's hand stroked the semi-hard penis while sucking on her Master's

tongue as his fingers fingered her semi-wet vagina.

Even Virginia could not continue to watch, she turned and left.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXX (Part 3)

Tony had a small problem, it was his worry that no one else knew how

to produce the 'Toilet Water' besides David. His years of service,

his quick conversion to David's lifestyle and the strength of his

personality meant nothing when it all came down to the formula David

had created years ago.

Their names were mommy #4 and daughter #4. They were indeed mother
and daughter, only sixteen years separating them. Of asian descent

the two ladies were both tiny replicas of the other. They're age

could barely be guessed and few could tell which was the parent.

Tony had several incestuous couples for his pleasure in the house.

Tony had sold a years supply of 'Water' for these two sexual dynamos

to mommy #4's husband and daughter #4's father.

The man had eagerly consented, using the drug to succumb his younger

daughter to his desires. It was one of the most lucrative part of

David's Family, the selling of large doses of 'Toilet Water' to the

elite of society. It had all, originally, been Tony's idea.

While David had kept his lust aimed towards his own mother, Tony had

been intrigued with forcing other families into such relationships.

Perhaps at one time David was interested in this particular kink, but

now, so many years later, his mind had no sexual thought but for the

long dead.

Naked and laying upon his huge sized bed with both naked females

sucking on either side of his hard cock, Tony ate an apple and

wondered how to get the formula from his long-time friend. Especially

before it was too late - David couldn't keep going on his current

path, that much was for certain.

Without that formula, he would loose everything. The family would

turn to dust. There would be thousands of women around the world that

would be strung out nympho addicts, humping anything that moved if

their supply disintegrated.

Several years ago, David had consented to a controlled test that Tony

wanted to do. They locked three different addicted females into three

different rooms. They had plenty of food and water but 'Toilet

Water'. It didn't take long for them to become strung out, craving

that which only the 'Water' could give. Soon even their sanity was in

question as they ran about their rooms attempting to get anything and

everything into their vaginas. Pressing their constantly wet sex

against any protruding angle. Their fingers repeatedly fondling

themselves. All without quenching that fire, a bonfire that only the

'Water' could deliver.

Two floors below him, he knew his mother was probably sucking David's

soft cock, fingering his friends anus as well as fucking his big toe

into her cunt. All to excite his near comatose body. It disgusted

the man that his slut mother was doing this, though he doubted anyone

else could.

He had to find some way to get that damn formula!



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXI (Part 3)

Virginia felt her skin crawl when Tony grasped her upper arm to stop

her from leaving. As quickly as he had grabbed her he let his hand

go. "Sorry! Just stop and listen will you."

"I am not going to trick David into doing anything." She stood with

arms crossed tapping a foot anxiously.

Tony only had a silk robe on and it was so loose, nothing was hidden
beneath. "Don't you know what will happen if he dies?"

"David isn't going to die!" She didn't even believe the sound of her

own voice.

The middle-aged man shrugged, "Perhaps or perhaps he will. He is

certainly trying to kill himself." Virginia had no answer to that.

"I think the only thing that happens if David dies is that you will no

longer be able to rule..."

"... without the 'Water'." He finished for her.

That stopped her. "Don't you know how to make it?"

"That is the one thing that David never revealed, to me or to anyone.

I've looked though his private papers and nothing. Its stuck in his

head."

Virginia turned and looked out the window to the windy fall day, two

female slaves were tending the fallen leaves. "This isn't good."

"Your finally figuring that out huh?"

She ignored his thrust. "Let me talk with Mary and see when is the

best time to talk with David."

"Talk...!"

Virginia spun about, "Listen Tony, I'm not going to trick David. I

have been with him too long to do something to hurt him."

"Then you will be crawling on the ground waiting for the next dog to

come along to fuck that cunt of yours." He wasn't being figurative

but very literal.

He never got away with talking with her like that, but this was

different, Tony was right. She had seen a couple of the women that

had not been able to get a fix of the mind controlling drug. It

caused a shiver of fear to run up her spin.

"Come to my office after lunch tomorrow." The door slammed as he

left.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXII (Part 3)

That same night Virginia lay naked in bed as Mary cuddled up into her

arm, her head upon the tall sexy woman's shoulders. For hours

Virginia could not sleep, could not get Tony's words out of her head.

For years she has fought for some semblance of normalcy in the family
and other than the times when the drug was in the air, she had been

successful.

It had been crazy those first years after moving into this mansion.

Tony and David and fucked every female that moved. They both had a

particular like for incest, in their own families as well as others.

And the 'Water' give them the power to do anything they wished. It

was a crazy time, filled with evenings of orgies of naked female

bodies using every means at their disposal that fancied either male.

Mothers had been forced to fuck their sons, daughters fucked their

fathers, sisters and brothers, mothers and daughters and of course

sisters and sisters. Virginia shivered remembering how she had helped

David introduce Samantha into his Family.

"Mary?"

A light sleeper she awoke easily enough, "Hum?"

"Is there a good time to reason with David?"

That caught her attention and Mary lifted her head up off the shoulder

to look into her lovers eyes. "Not really." It was a strange

question, one that Virginia already knew the question too.

"Never?"

"Well sometimes, but its hardly predictable."

"Damn!"

Mary moved her hand to Virginia's still firm breast, "Why darling?"

Virginia couldn't tell even Mary she realized, the horror of it too

real and very probable. No, in fact she had to hid this from the

closest person in her life.

Instead Virginia turned her head and slipped her tongue between Mary's

lips. "I want to use the beaver."

Mary gasped and smiled hugely, the earlier questions already

forgotten. The 'beaver' was a strip of leather shaped like a beavers

tail, thus the name. It inevitably meant tying the person up and

spanking her body till the pain mixed with the pleasure that soon

followed. Virginia had never truly lost the urge to tie up a woman

and hurt her since she had done it so long ago to David's mom.

Reaching over, Virginia quickly unlocked the small cupboard and

extracted a small glass vial. She squeezed it between her strong

fingers and immediately the glass shattered and fell to the floor.

Both ladies found themselves inhaling deeply as the harsh stench of

the 'Toilet Water' quickly clouded their minds and moistened their

cunts.

Roughly Virginia pushed off her lover, and rolled over to sit upon the

small of Mary's back. Mary only moaned in delight as her life-mate

roughly tied a satin sheet around her wrists behind her. Quickly,

feeling the heat of her loins spreading throughout her body, Virginia

retrieved the 'beaver' and knelt next to the round soft bottom of the

younger woman.

Even as her hand came down with the 'beaver' she felt a thread of fear

run through her body at the realization that she may soon find herself

without the 'Water'. Tears began to rain down her cheeks as Mary

cried out in pleasure and pain as her ass turned a bright red at the

beating she was receiving.

Possibly being the only woman that was allowed her own access to

'Toilet Water', Virginia never needed to abuse this privilege. She

didn't need too, there was always enough to quell her urges. At least

once per day she cracked a vial of the liquid and enjoyed its result.

Soon she may find herself in a brothel in the middle of the worst

jungle in the world, slobbered upon by the most grotesque of men. All

the while she would want more, beg for more cock, cunt, animal or

human. It wouldn't matter. She would hump, fuck or suck anything or

anybody. The lowest of the low for sluts.

Her hands trembling in fear and 'Water' induced excitement, Virginia

retrieved another toy. This one a strap-on penis that had an

attachment that caused vibration next to her clit each time she push

the head of the phallus into a woman. It was something that David had

had developed years before.

Fueled by her impassioned blood, Virginia knelt behind her long time

lover and aimed maliciously. She drove herself and the phallus down

into Mary's anus, which immediately produced a scream of pain and

pleasure.

Tomorrow, when the drug wore off, Mary would be very sore for several

days. Not for years has she been treated like this, this rough and

forcibly. Virginia liked soft gentle love making, where tongue and

fingers did the work. Where lingerie was the only addition to their

bed-time play. Evidently, it wasn't enough this night.

Fueled by 'Toilet Water' Virginia started to push her hips back and

forth behind her lovers with such force it was pushing the plump cute

woman upwards in the bed. Again and again she pounded her cock into

Mary, the produced vibrations feeling like nirvana.

Worry and excitement started to overwhelm her and Virginia began to

see spots before her eyes.

Later, much later, Virginia awoke naked and sweating upon the wide

bed. Her sex was sore from its abuse and sensitive from several

orgasms. She looked over at Mary and found the woman still laying as

she had been earlier, on her stomach with her hands bound behind her.

Mary also had the now unlatched strap-on cock still in her rectum.

The tiny woman looked abused, spent and well fucked. With regret

Virginia knew Mary would be very sore when she awoke. The scent of

the 'Water' was no longer clouding her judgment and she knew, without

a doubt now, that her principles had to be ignored and her lust for

'Toilet Water' forced her to join camps with Tony. Already, her fear

was already changing her disposition.

Somehow they had to get the formula out of David.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXIII (Part 3)

"Okay, I figure we put a secret camera in the lab", an area in the

basement next to the 'dungeon', "and watch exactly what David does."

Virginia just nodded her head back and forth, she knew it wouldn't

work. "David doesn't label his vials and he isn't neat enough to keep

things in one place." And she knew all the vials looked the same.

Years ago Virginia wanted to get out of David's family so bad she had

thought for years how to get the formula off him. Even then she knew

that it was impossible for her to leave her addiction and David. She

tried so many different things, without jeopardizing her position with

the Family. All to no effect.

"Besides, we have enough supply of 'Toilet Water' to last us and our

clients for nearly three more years." And Virginia could not imagine

what life would be like if she knew at the end of the three years she

would be a zombie of lust, looking for anything to quench the fire

between her legs, and never succeeding. "Who knows when he will next

go to the lab."

Tony took this as an offense, Virginia had trashed his ideas so

quickly. And to make matters worse, she was right.

They sat in the glass partitioned dining room. Alone and seated

across the table. Each hating the other but also both needing the

others participation, if not for different reasons.

"Well what is your idea?" She stared past him, fear again nearly

overwhelming her. She had no other ideas.

Then Gail walked by, looking like she had a long difficult night.

Virginia watched her walk, with pity, knowing she had been with David

the night before.

Tony seeing her gaze change from a far-away look to one that watched

and followed someone behind him, saw his mother also. "Slut", he

mumbled. He too understood where she had just come from.

"I think Gail is the answer."

That caused Tony to frown, he could barely stand to be in the same

room any longer with his mother. And too think of her as his

salvation seemed a little too much for him. "You have to be joking?"

"No! I think that is exactly what will work." Virginia ventured a

smile, her new idea taking shape in her mind.

Tony was getting angry, "Well what the fuck is it?"

"David's mother."

He shook his head as if to clear it, "What of her."

"Thats the answer."

"The sluts been dead for years, how is that supposed to help us?"

"Who is the one person that David reveres above all others? The one

that even drives him to drink himself senseless each night? His mom."

"So?"

"So... if we can find someone that looks like her ...!"

"...he will think the slut is his mother and give the formula to her."

He took another quick sip of is brandy, "Hardly, he never gave the

formula to her when she was alive, I doubt if he would do it now."

"She never asked."

That froze Tony in place, indeed David's mother never asked her son

for the formula. In his current drunken depressed condition he may

just mistake her as his mother.

He couldn't help but sneer, "I thought you didn't want to trick him?"

Virginia couldn't meet his face but felt a tear slip from one eye.

Tony stood to leave, "With all your holier than thou ways Virginia

your just like David and I. If you had only been born with a

cock...!"

He laughed all the way to the glass doorway, "Look though the Family's

girls to see if we have one in stock that looks like the old hen, or

find one. I could care less who, just find the cunt. And fast!" He

slammed the door nearly enough to break the glass.

Dealing with Virginia always left him feeling like he needed to fuck

the shit out of some slut, Tony made his way to the dungeon for some

entertainment.

Virginia only sat in place, hating herself and the life she was forced

into. If the actress couldn't get David to give out the formula then

at least it may give him enough of a jolt to wake him from this living

dead imitation. Perhaps this had a chance in helping David as well as

preserving the 'Water' for the ladies of the Family.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXIV (Part 3)

Virginia could not find a single female that looked like David's dead

mother.

She had inspected every woman in the family household. Every female

in the family that had duties off the family compound. And each that

had been sent out under contract for the Family.

Nothing!

Tony was becoming livid with his rush to get this plan moving, David

seemed to be deteriorating daily.

Every photo, very video and every drawing that had the likeness of the

dead woman was collected and analyzed by a group of ladies that had

known her. Within the half-dozen ladies, it included Loni, Tony's

sister, and Jill, Mary's sister. None were told why they needed to

find a substitute for the long dead woman but only that it was

imperative.

It was Virginia's idea to focus on looking for a woman about the same

age as the year David first discovered the 'Toilet Water' rather than

closer to the age of her death. She, of all people, understood

David's apathy towards himself, his disgust and desire mixed together,

and his guilt at what he had first done initially in his own

household.

David had created a dynasty but it was now in danger of crumbling.

Several came close, close enough for Tony at least, but none were

close enough for Virginia's taste. She had known the woman, she had

hated her and loved her. She had also felt sorry for the woman as

well as envied her position over her only son. Virginia had also

dominated the woman both under the influence of the 'Water' as well as

in private. David's mom learned to love the taste of leather upon her

bottom, to be bound as orgasm overcame her, and to even feel

humiliation towards Virginia, her son's girlfriend.

For years she had been her son's staunchest supporter. Driving him on

towards new and amazing heights of lust and lewdness. His mother
joined him in so many orgies and initiations of new family members

that she was intimately known by nearly every female in the house at

that time. All had tasted from the sex of the woman who had born

their master.

Tony had arrived moments before, in the tiny spare room that had been

turned into an office for the search. He didn't hide the reason why

he had come, he wanted to take his sister Loni to his bed for the

evening and was anxious to get started. The slightly older woman had

been flown in from the family run brothel in the south of France. To

many of the ladies, it was the one family run business that was

considered one of the beast duties to be sent too. One that only the

privileged were given the honor to work there.

Virginia on the other hand, felt this was an intrusion upon her

mandate. Each of the research group had been promised extra dosages

of 'Toilet Water' and as many of the household females for their

pleasure, if only they focused and worked towards the known goal.

It had been a week since they had started and nothing had been

accomplished.

"What about her?"

It was Jill's normally enthusiastic voice that had spoken. It was a

question that was asked many many times in the last week, so it wasn't

something to get excited about. Virginia went over to the makeshift

desk and looked down at the paper in the woman's hand. In it was a

article and a picture from some newspaper, in the picture was a mature
but attractive woman standing just behind two men smiling and shaking

hands.

Expensively dressed, jewels, different hair and less makeup perhaps,

but it was the eyes that caught Virginia's attention. The eyes were

the same. "Oh my god." It came out nearly a whisper but all in the

room stopped and looked towards the tall sexy woman.

It was Tony that finally grunted, "What?"

Holding the paper out to Tony she said with a smile of triumph, "Its

her!"

He studied the picture for nearly a minute as the other ladies in the

room congratulated Jill on her find, an unknown prize was to be

awarded to the one that had found her. His frown of displeasure

started to soften and then finally he smiled, a thing that was rare

indeed.

Tony too saw the resemblance. "Who is the slut?"

Virginia took back the paper and quickly scanned the article. Her joy

turning quickly to disappointment, "She is the wife of some American

Senator."

It had been ordered that no public person or person of power could be

approached to join in the Family. It was too dangerous, as David

understood that his family only thrived in obscurity.

"So?" Tony too knew the order given.

Virginia frowned, "Your call?"

It would have to be his decision and his alone, this was outside her

power to have influence in. Virginia was only powerful within the

Family not out.

"Get her. We can't chance letting this woman get away from us, just

get the cunt." He motioned for Loni towards him, she ran to her

brother knowing the dangers in angering him, and pulled the woman's

skirt up to give his fingers access to her sex.

"I'll tell Acquisition." It was the department within the family that

Tony was also the head of, a few women who's primary job was to get

persons that David or Tony had a desire for. These were primarily

ladies who didn't mind snatching young teenagers or mothers from their

families.

"No." Loni was beginning to pump her hips even as her brother had two

fingers inside her vagina, her body responding as it had been trained

for the last many years. "You do it Virginia, I don't trust anyone

else in this matter!"

Virginia was surprised but knew exactly why Tony told her to do this,

if it didn't work, Tony could point the finger at Virginia. So far

his involvement was minimal.

She nodded her acceptance, even with his snakish and obvious

intentions, Tony was right this was just too important. "Then I want

Loni to help?"

That got a frown from him, "Why?" His sister was gasping and pumping

herself on her brothers fingers, her orgasm fast approaching.

"She has spent years servicing women of all ages and with all types of

desires." At her brothel in the south of France, its clientele was

primarily the upper crust of society. Women only.

It was true. "You get her tomorrow."

Virginia could see that this was not an issue the Tony would give on,

his little family reunion later was an event that left her with a

feeling of compassion for Loni. Tony's desires could sometimes be on

the rough and imaginative side.

Tony left with but a smile, his fingers pulling his sister by her

vagina. She didn't notice as she tried hard to push more of her

brother into her as she struggled to follow him.

Virginia turned back to the five others in the analysis group, "Okay,

now I want to concentrate on cataloging everything we can about

David's mother. Jill, I want you to discretely find out where I can

find this Senator's wife?"

"No problem Virginia."

"And Jill," the outgoing personality with the same body as her tiny

round sister, looked suddenly somber at Virginia's warning, "I said

discretely!"



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXV (Part 3)

Setting down the phone, Virginia looked at the scratch pad with the

notes she just wrote down. "Anything?" Asked Loni, laying naked upon

the large queen sized hotel bed they shared.

"Only a phone number. I don't like this." Virginia also was naked,

just having woken up.

"Like what?" They two had become lovers in their travels to the

United States, forced upon them by the scent of the 'Water' rations

Virginia brought with them. Every woman in the household needed

someone to enjoy their addiction with, be they compatible or not, the

'Toilet Water' was the ultimate leveler.

It had not totally be disagreeable, Virginia had found Loni's

expertise in eating pussy a perfection. The woman had been trained

nearly since her introduction into David's family so many years ago,

to enjoy giving pleasure to women. It was how she got off. It was

part of the reason she was in the south of France.

Other than a few group sessions years ago, Virginia and Loni had never

truly been intimate. Virginia had learned, quickly in the last ten

days, to regret that.

"This! Seducing Senator Benson's wife!" Virginia sat heavily down

upon the bed and reached for the phone while Loni knelt behind her

mistress and started to massage her shoulders and lower back with her

expert hands.

Even in her fowl mood, Virginia still had to do her duty. The

consequences of failure a living horror too nasty to imagine. Nearly.

Those images came to easily, too fast when the thought of the 'Water'

drying up. It scared her like nothing ever had. More than her life

itself!

She called a number at a prearranged location in Iceland, one that

rerouted the line to five different locations around the globe. After

several clicks she heard the dial tone and then dialed the number that

had been given to her by Jill back at the family compound.

"Yes, hello. May I speak to Mrs. Benson please?" Her voice was now

soft, relaxed. She had to do her best acting if she and all other

addicted ladies were to survive. "No, I'm sorry she doesn't."

A long minute of waiting.

"Hello, Mrs. Benson?" Loni climbed off the bed and smiled hugely,

knowing that the first contact with their quarry was successful. She

pressed Virginia's thighs apart and slide her face between.

Knowing the pleasures that Loni could deliver Virginia never pushed

her head out from between her legs but instead spread them even

further and lay back. A tongue began a taunting expression of lust

and eloquence as it danced upon the sex before it.

"My name is Ms. Lovell and I was told you and your husband, the

Senator, have an interest in our children's education?" She already

felt the pressures begin between her legs, it never failed to amaze

her how expert Loni was in using her tongue. And Virginia, whom had

sex with over a thousand different ladies, was no slouch in herself.

"No, I've no link to that group. I represent a private interest that

is willing to spend large sums in getting their point across." It had

been Tony's only contribution to this plan, that money is the door

opener for all. "Of course Mrs. Benson... Yvonne. Thank you."

Virginia hung up the phone and grabbed the back of Loni's head. "You

slut, couldn't wait for me to finish this call could you?" Loni just

smiled without breaking stride in the work she so much enjoyed.

Virginia reached for her bag and another vial of 'Toilet Water', the

fire between her legs would consume her with that familiar scent in

the air. And she needed to forget what she was down here to do.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXVI (Part 3)

Yvonne Benson looked just like the pictures that Yvonne's analysis

group had compiled. The eyes were exact to David's mother, so close,

that standing here in the garden it caused a reaction between her legs

when looking into them. Her sex never forgot it seemed.

Yvonne sat on the marble bench listening to the two ladies politely,

attempting to decide of they were worth the Senator's time. "That is

all well and fine my dear but you still have not told me exactly what

you have what my husband to accomplish for this new relationship we

could build?" In other words, what did Virginia want in exchange for

contributing large sums to the Senator.

It wasn't a question that she had planned well, "I shall reveal that

in time Yvonne." It didn't sit well with the woman, approximately the

same age as Virginia, agreeing to so much money without knowing the

terms it was given at. Yet again, it was a heck of a lot of money,

even to a woman like Yvonne Benson that had lived a life of luxury.

Since they were outside, the meeting place had not been well planned,

Virginia could not break a vial of 'Toilet Water'. The light wind

would take its addictive scent fast from their vicinity. She could

see that Loni was practically itching for it to be broken, for her to

dive between the shapely thighs of the Senator's wife. It had been

her duty, why she was brought - for her to use her expert tongue in

fast-tracking the seduction of the Yvonne Benson.

It was not to be.

Hours later, on the phone back to the family compound, Virginia

listened to Tony's loud and descriptive disgust at the lack of

progress at the first meeting. In getting a woman into the family it

was always the most desirable if she could be seduced gently by

inadvertently letting her enjoy the effects of the 'Water'. Just as

Virginia had done years before to Tony's own mother, Gail.

Finally, after venting for several moments, Tony finally ordered,

"Listen cunt, call that slut and tell her I want a meeting, in

private, with her fucking husband!"

"Why don't we try one more time Tony?" To be truthful, Virginia had

no idea why Tony wanted to talk with Yvonne's husband but could only

assume he had discovered some piece of information that could be used

as leverage.

"No. If my meeting doesn't work we will have to send a team in to

snatch her." The last desperate plan, one that was very undesirable

when dealing with this wife of a powerful man. "Then your job will be

much easier right Virginia?" He was taunting her, making fun that she

could not seduce Yvonne at the first meeting. "Give the phone to my

slut sister."

"Yes Master?" Virginia watched Loni's face drain of all blood and her

body seemed to turn into a scared little girl. Whatever her brother
was telling her, scared her immensely. When they had left the day

after discovering Mrs. Benson, Loni's arse could not be touched for

days and her vagina had bruising that could be seen since she had no

hair below her head. Loni was a woman that was very scared of her own

brother and the Family's second in charge. Finally she set down the

phone.

"Master ordered me to ask you to spank me." She looked humbled,

scared.

"I don't take orders from Tony."

"He predicted you may say that and told me to tell you that if you do

not beat me each day before we return home that he will... he

will...!" Loni began to cry, for her, the holiday was over.

Virginia was too compassionate with all the ladies of the family to

send a woman into Tony's jaws if she had the power to stop it. This

time she did. She held Loni as she sobbed, knowing that she would

have to use the other woman in ways that she privately enjoyed. Her

sex was moistening in anticipation.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXVII (Part 3)

Tony sat in a large leather chair next before the huge domineering

desk. Beside him sat a young woman, early teenager really, that he

had brought with him for a specific purpose. Though he understood,

Tony didn't like the cloak and dagger of seducing a woman. He much

preferred the direct method. As for snatching, it was too dirty even

for him.

Finally, "I'm sorry I kept you waiting."

Senator Benson finally strode in, closing his door behind him came

over and sitting down in his old worn but comfortable leather chair

behind the desk. He wore his politician's smile, one that disgusted

Tony. "Thank you so much for the contribution you brought today. It

will go well towards the goals of the people of..."

"Shut the fuck up Ben." No one ever spoke to the Senator like that,

no one. In fact it stunned him silent for a brief few seconds.

"Listen to me you old pervert, I know about the girls."

Tony had come to the office, with only Virginia's recommendation to

Yvonne Benson. And a very large check. The money meant nothing to

Tony, it just got him the 5 minutes he requested alone with the

Senator.

The Senator's jowls began to shake in barely pent up rage, "What

girls?" He spat the last word out.

Tony only smiled, he was back in his world. A degenerate world where

sex ruled the wills of men and women. "I know about Shirley and her

younger sister Anne, Senator. The polariods that you took. The

little trips that you arrange for the three of you. How you share

them with friends with similar tastes!" That was exactly how Tony

came across the information, a poor but high class individual from

Italy gave the information freely when a huge sum was given as an

incentive.

The older man looked as if he was about to have a heart attack, he was

talking but no sound was coming out all the while he was thumping his

chest. It was comical, it was also irrelevant to Tony. If the old
man died, it would solve his problem also.

"I also know you and your wife sleep in separate rooms, when you are

even in the same city, which is rare."

The old man was calming down, his face a bright red though, and he sat

back wide eyed and looking very angry. "Who the hell are you?"

Tony smiled and shrugged, "Doesn't matter." He turned to the teenager

next to him, "Get naked Shirley." The girl didn't say a word but

stood up and started to remove her clothing.

The Senator watched amazed, "What is this? If this is blackmail...!"

"Its not Senator Benson, think of this slut as a small gift from me to

you." The older man looked at Tony briefly till returning his gaze to

the very attractive girl. "Senator, I have a proposal. A trade of

sorts?"

This was more in line with how this politician operated, something

never came for nothing. "What sort of trade?"

Shirley stood naked, thin gangly limbs, hairless between her legs, and

only small bumps on her chest indicating her new puberty. As she had

been told earlier by her Master, Shirley sat back in her chair, placed

both her legs over the arms of it and began to leisurely masturbate.

"My god! She is a 'gift'?"

Tony ignored the young girl and the Senators last question. "Its easy

Senator, I want your wife." Simple thought Tony.

The older white haired man turned back to Tony and smirked, "Yvonne?

If you want her...be my guest." It was obvious that he was implying

that no one gets their way with his wife, normally he would probably

be right. This wasn't your normal situation. His gaze turned again

to Shirley's slow moving fingers and the picture of pleasure written

upon her face.

"I shall take that as an agreement then?" Tony wasn't in the mood to

mince words.

"How old is she?" He was asking about Shirley.

"Thirteen."

"Where did she come from? Ukrainian orphanage?"

Tony figured that must be an area where men of power and wealth were

able to acquire certain desires, though Tony had never heard of it

before. "No, just a normal middle class teenager who had an

attractive mother."

"Her mother knows?"

"Shirley's mother is normally on my left while this slut is on my

right side." mother #8 and daughter #8 actually.

The Senator frowned, "Your joking?" He of course didn't take his eyes

from the masturbating teenager.

"Listen Senator, I really don't want to play word games. I want you

to give me your wife."

"What do you mean?"

Shirley's sex was so wet it was making sounds as two fingers plunged

in and out of herself. The young girl reach around her raised thigh

with her free hand and started to worm her index finger into her anus.

"All you have to do is agree and you shall never see or hear from her

again."

Even with the great show Senator Benson was witnessing he turned his

head towards Tony, "Are you going to kill her?"

"No."

"Then why?" It was irrational that he should be here chatting so

calmly about making his wife disappear. Though, it did make his heart

rush with excitement at the thought.

"Lets just say I have a use for her."

"What will I tell our friends, my..."

"Not my problem."

"Will she be raped if I agree?" He looked like the concept would

please him.

Tony smiled like the evil snake about to watch Eve take a bite of the

apple, "Yvonne won't be raped, but she will ... she will be just like

Shirley here." The teenager was fast approaching her orgasm, her flat

stomach was doing contortions and her body trembling.

"I don't believe you, my wife would never..." Both men watched the

teenager as she began to squeal and clench as the orgasm shot through

her body. "My god!"

"She is a beautiful piece of cunt isn't she?" Senator Benson only

nodded his acceptance. "Shirley is all yours if you agree, in a week

her mom will show up if you want her also."

Since Shirley had not been given the command to stop she continued to

stimulate herself. She alternated from licking her own juices from

her fingers, plunging them deep to again get them wet, to lubricating

her asshole directly from her vagina. Both hands were busy smearing

her juices about parts of her body.

"There is one catch though."

"I knew it!" The Senator automatically assumed there would be.

"Shirley and her mom are addicted to something that they need at least

once every couple of days. Lets say it helps their motivation."

The older man just frowned.

"In fact, for your wife you get Shirley, her mom - both trained to

pleasure you however way you may want - as well as enough of the drug

for one year for both of them and enough to addict two other ladies.

That is the really what our bargain is about."

Tony reached over and roughly pinched Shirley's nipple to get her

attention, "Get over there and suck your new Master's cock slut."

She squeaked at the pain but then slipped off her chair and crawled

about the large desk. Tony could hear the slacks as Shirley unzipped

the old man, he held his question till the man sighed loudly with the

pleasure of the teenage experienced mouth upon him. "Do we have a

deal Senator?"

"Yes. Oh god yes!" The old man was already shooting his load right

into the back of the girls throat.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXVIII (Part 3)

Virginia could not believe Yvonne's own husband simply traded his wife
of many years off like some piece of meat. Tony had taken pleasure in

relating everything an hour after the meeting concluded, explaining in

detail how Senator Benson's body shook as if he was about to pass away

even as he came into the young girls throat.

It was crazy to make that sort of deal, dangerous too. Crazy since

the drug was so addictive that once it was used upon a woman just

once, she would forever need its strong scent within her body else she

became a raving animal for her cunts pleasure. Tony had not given the

Senator a way to contact him for more 'Water' after the years supply

was over. In this way he was ensuring a living hell for Shirley and

her mother. It was dangerous because of the power this man held, he

lived in a different world than David's family lived in.

Evidently, Tony could care less about both.

Behind the huge hanging curtain Virginia waited, as planned, in the

private bedroom of Yvonne Benson. Only hours before, unknown to the

woman, her husband of several years had just bartered her ass away for

the pleasure of having his cock plunge into the depths of a teenage

girls body and a drug to give him more young pussy than even he could

enjoy.

Sex made people behave very strangely Virginia knew.

Tony sat upon a chair, also behind the curtain with Virginia. He had

insisted upon coming, but acknowledged that it was Virginia's

operation.

It seemed like hours, but it was probably only many minutes when the

door to the huge bedroom opened and Yvonne came strolling in. Even

after all these years the sound of that tiny glass cylinder breaking

excited Virginia, as she knew the pleasures that were soon upon her.

Tony broke a two vials, just to be sure, and relaxed in his chair and

watched.

It was Yvonne that was to make the first move and she did, eventually.

Since it was a large room, it must have taken a few moments till the

smell permeated throughout. As Mrs. Benson set down her half empty

wine goblet and kicked off her heels. Another long day for a

Senator's wife, at least she had the privacy and sanctuary of her

bedroom to retreat from. No one dared enter her room without her

express permission, and all that knew Yvonne Benson knew better than

to interrupt.

It had been weeks but the sexy mature woman was feeling frisky,

perhaps from the wine she thought. God her nipples were already

itching for attention, perhaps she better use the Beast Master tonight

she thought laughing to herself.

Virginia watched, her own body quickly responding to the stimuli of

the 'Water', as Yvonne went to her bed side table and pulled out a

thick black mechanicalized dildo. She wanted to rush in right now to

use that thick beast in her own aching cunt, but she had to force

herself to wait. Her fingers helped ease the initial pressure.

The only thing Senator Benson had to do for Tony was tell him when his

wife went to bed, where her room was and to keep that end of the

mansion empty till midnight.

When she saw the slick black surface of her dildo, Yvonne realized

that her sex was a virtual fire that could not wait for her usual slow

hot bath and a sexy self seductive dance before teasing her body with

her own fingers. No, this demanded a more immediate solution!

The middle-aged woman hiked up her skirt till it bunched about her

waist, pushed down her nylons and panties to her calves and dropped to

her knees on the hardwood floor before her night stand. Trembling

with desire she drove the phallus between her legs and began to fuck

herself with a passion that she had never experienced before.

Tony kept looking at his watch, anxious for this evenings chores to be

finished so he could return to his private jet and his waiting sister.

He was bored at the show Yvonne was unwittingly putting on for him.

While Virginia could not contain herself, the beautiful woman plunging

that fuck stick in and out of herself was just too much for her. She

began to rape her sex with her own fingers, anxious to feel that big

black cock plunging into her sex that Yvonne held in her hands.

So lost in the heat of her own pleasure, Yvonne did not hear the

sounds of fingers manipulating and plunging into a hot wet cunt or the

sighs of pleasure coming from behind the large full height hanging

curtains. Even if she did, she probably would not even care, so lost

in that place close to nirvana that she was in.

The orgasm came fast, faster than Yvonne had ever experienced before.

It also felt the most explosive mind blowing orgasm that she had ever

had. Her body shook as if the floor below her was shaking, her mind

plunged in and out of consciousness just as the Beast Master was

plunging into her depths.

With her orgasm over she realized that it wasn't enough, the most

powerful orgasm of her life, better than she had even imagined was

simply not enough. Tired of limb but the fire between her legs

driving her determined mind, Yvonne pulled the fuck stick from her

hole and began to slobber over it with her tongue. Pleasure running

through her at the intimate taste of her own sex, a taste that till

this evening had never interested her. It now tasted better than a

perfect wine, like ambrosia of the gods.

Still not enough, Yvonne tore at her clothing, the Beast Master

forgotten upon the floor momentarily, as she had a passion to torture

her normally sensitive nipples. Wiggling like a dog upon the floor,

the Senator's wife released one breast from behind her bra and blouse

and began to twist and pinch it mercilessly. The pain clouded her

mind and it felt like pleasure, she used more pressure wanting more

pain.

Something was pulling at the binding at her feet, her forgotten

undergarments, until her ankles were finally free. Yvonne never even

felt the warm hands push apart her knees or push her thighs back up to

her chest, as the pleasure from her puffy pleasure-pain filled nipples

rocked her mind with excitement.

Yvonne did feel the tongue attack her sex, so much so she actually

screamed out as her body and mind reached a plateau of pleasure that

could not even be imagined. Orgasm after orgasm hit her body as the

tongue raped her clitoris her vagina and her anus.

Nor did it register when a well-trimmed very hot wet cunt was placed

over her mouth, Yvonne only felt a new unexplored pleasure from the

new smell and taste of that body above her. She immediately did what

was natural, she opened her mouth and attempted to get as much of that

dripping mixture into her. That wasn't enough, she began to dig it

out with the extended tip of her tongue. She was so thirsty for the

liquid she dived into the hole and crack it came from.

Tony smiled at the sight, standing a couple feet away from the two

bodies intertwined in a fierce sixty-nine as they rolled about upon

the hard floor. Perhaps it wasn't such a good idea to use two vials,

he thought amused, they would not be much use for at least an hour.

And after that, it would be doubtful if either Yvonne or Virginia

could even walk.

It was a guy thing, as much as he hated Virginia he saw her naked

loins rolling about above Yvonne and his cock began to harden. He

wanted the bitch. Right now, under the 'Waters' influence, she would

beg for him. It didn't hurt that Virginia was a very beautiful woman,

even with so many years in the family and long past her prime. That

sexy perfect ass of hers called him.

Tony took his clothes off leisurely, knowing the two would continue to

attack each other to quench that unqueanchable fire for longer than he

would care.

Virginia was experienced enough to realized what was going on, whom

she licked and whom was licking her. Though it never mattered any if

she knew who lay below her or not. Only the burning in her loins and

the flush of excitement in her mind mattered. She knew when a long

hard phallus entered her whom its owner was, but she never cared.

Virginia only thought how exquisite that cock felt at that exact

moment, as if it was the most important thing in the world to her.

Tony grabbed the soft hips and began to pound his cock into Virginia's

raised body, her sex already making loud noises at his vigorous fuck.

"I'm fucking you cunt... lousy cunt licking slut...!" Her body shock

with the force of his thrusts and it in turn shook the body beneath

her.

Yvonne felt the hardness slip past her forehead and push its way into

the grotto where her tongue had just been. At first she felt mild

disappointment till she saw with perfect imagery just what was going

on above her. The sounds, smells, taste and sight was all sex. It

was nirvana, heaven where only pleasure mattered. The middle-aged

woman began to lick everywhere, the clitoris, the sucking inner lips

of the other woman's sex, the slippery hard plunging cock, the

swinging balls beneath.

With this renewed attack upon her sex, Virginia could only take a few

seconds till her body exploded in another orgasm. She knew that it

was the pleasure inducing 'Toilet Water' but it never mattered, only

her mind numbing pleasure mattered.

The cock withdrew from her body and left a void that was suddenly

filled by a hot plunging tongue. Virginia again pushed her head

between the sweaty thighs and her mouth over the hairy pussy below,

her teeth nibbling on the clitoris heartily.

Tony sneered knowing Virginia would not resist him, could not resist

him, as he aimed his cock once more. The saliva, pussy juice and

sweaty asshole was resistant to his advances initially. Then it

suddenly opened and allowed the hard long cock to enter into its tight

dark depths. Tony again grabbed at Virginia's thighs and started to

fuck his family member with abandon, hoping to hurt her enough that

she would remember his intrusion whenever she sat down for the next

couple of days.

He wasn't disappointed.

Nearing his own explosion, mostly from his malicious pleasure in

raping the holes before him, he pulled out and pushed the two bodies

upon their side. It was only right if he welcomed Yvonne into the

Family properly he thought as he moved her upper leg and pushed his

cock into her sex.

It was like the sky opened up and the light shone down upon her. A

new world opened revealed itself and her earthly life no longer

mattered as that cock filled her.

With a single plunge her body began to shake with orgasm, the largest

yet, and continued as the pumping seed filled her.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXIX (Part 3)

It was elementary to get Yvonne back to the family compound. It was

easy to keep her in a delirium of 'Toilet Water' and endless female

flesh. Where her only world was of pleasurable sex and sleep. With

only ten days back she was becoming conditioned to respond to the

simplest sexual touch or word, anything could sex her body and mind

off onto an exciting adventure that left her in nirvana.

Yvonne never knew where she was, nor who she was, nor whom she had

been. Only the now mattered and only the next pleasure mattered. It

was the most aggressive training Tony had ever ordered.

"Its dangerous!" Virginia stood at the foot of Yvonne's bed, arms

crossed over her chest looking pitifully down at the sleeping woman.

"Its necessary." Tony was clothed only in a silk robe, his body still

sweaty from a recent tumble with an unknown family slave. Virginia

didn't want to know who.

"She is not used to this, no one is!" She couldn't look at him, nor

had she since that evening when the two of them first gave Yvonne a

smell of the 'Toilet Water'. Instead of angrily confronting Tony with

his actions during that session, she had ignored it. Though David

decreed she be free from Tony's demands, he was no longer available to

protect her. In a way she felt violated, but knew better than to say

a word. At the time it had been consensual. Hell, she thought

ironically, it has been years since she had felt a real man inside

her. Without the 'Water' to cloud her judgment, a part of her wanted

to feel his cock yet again enter her. Though she would never reveal

this to anyone, it would give Tony extra power over her in the Family.

Something that she could not let happen.

"When the slut thinks she is David's mother then it will be time."

"But when will that happen?"

"The Trainer said very soon, Yvonne was ripe for the plucking."

Virginia knew what he meant, that Yvonne was a woman just past her

prime that had not been sexually active most of her life. A fake cock

was no equal to a real man's member. When she finally felt a man
enter her she was grateful and filled with pleasure, two initial

emotions that helped them now create her into the image of David's

mom.

An argument had ensued when they had at first brought her to the

compound, if she needed to think she was the long dead mother or if

she just went along with it. Virginia was of the latter thinking

while Tony was of the former. With his knowing smile and amused look

she remembered his plunging cock and the pleasure she derived from

that and had allowed his idea to win over hers. That was when she

first feared that his dominance may rule the Family.

"I need you to ensure the Trainer is doing her job, she doesn't

understand the importance of this mission." Only Yvonne and Tony did,

and they wanted no one else to know.

"'Ensure' how?" Virginia asked nervously, not sure what Tony meant.

"Keep an eye on the training and schedule." He watched Yvonne too,

thinking that perhaps he should include his cock in the schedule for

her training. He fondly remembered her abnormally tight vagina and

the heat and clenching as she came, he wanted to again experience it.

Soon he just may, he realized!

"I can do that." Yvonne stirred in her sleep bringing a bound hand

between her legs to press against her sex. "Its nearly time to

restart."

"Yes." As an afterthought, "You may want to start including lingerie

into her training, David's mom wore it frequently."

"True. I'll see to it today." Virginia hated the sound of her voice,

hoping it did not sound as subservient to Tony as it did to her.

"I think she should start learning on real cocks and not just those

strap-ons the Trainer and her girls are using."

That surprised Virginia, normally other males were never allowed

within the compound. "Is that a good idea?"

He shrugged, "She has to pleasure a real cock not some fake one, and

David's mom was very experienced in pleasing her son."

"True. How do you think we can accomplish this?" Again they were to

go against David's wishes, a thing that normally shot fear though her

body. Yet she was surprised at how easy it was after each time they

went against David's family orders.

"Get some boys from the local school or something. Don't do it at the

compound though." She knew he didn't want any outside knowledge of

anything that went on in the compound. "I want her", he meant Yvonne,

"to become the slut that David's mom was." Tony sounded almost

envious of David, as if his own mother wasn't a slut herself.

Perhaps, Virginia thought, he was envious of David's love and desire

that he had held for his mother even after her death.

"Make sure she learns properly Virginia, I want her to think she is

David's mother."

Virginia thought he sounded almost desperate and was rather surprised.

"Certainly Tony." She realized he was just as scared of loosing the

'Toilet Water' as she was, if not for different reasons.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXX (Part 3)

Virginia watched the one-way glass as Yvonne began to suck the eighth

cock in less than an hour. The naked teenage boy pumped his hips

vigorously, though without any semblance of patience or knowledge, his

cock ploughing fast in and out of the hungry female mouth.

It was the boys fourth visit, the second time within her mouth. The

first time in Yvonne's vagina and the last in her asshole.

Her face a mess of male spend, her body sweaty and trembling for a

release of her own, but Yvonne's whole manner was centered on the cock

that she orally pleasured.

The Trainer stood next to Virginia, "Its going good I think?"

Virginia only grunted, "Does she know who 'Yvonne' is?"

"No, she only answers to 'slut', 'cunt', 'slave', 'mom' and 'mommy'."

The Trainer was a woman in her early thirties that was discovered to

contain an innornament about of patience and a passion for dominance.

It was Tony's idea a couple of years ago to gave her an outlet to

punish and train the girls in the family that needed her special

attention. She had been hugely successful each time.

Again Virginia nodded. "And does she know who David is?"

"Yes, every cock, every man that uses her is her one and only son

'David'. He is her 'master' and she does anything that he requests."

The Trainer added with a smirk, "She would never let another man near

her but her own son."

"Anything?" Virginia turned to the trainer and raised an eyebrow, she

wondered how far Tony intended on this going.

"I don't doubt she would kill herself if commanded." It shouldn't

surprise Virginia but it did.

"And Yvonne Benson?"

"No longer exists." The Trainer smiled hugely, proud at her success

while wishing she was dealing with Tony. He knew how to treat a woman

not this holier-than-thou strumpet.

"What of the girls that she plays with?"

The Trainer shrugged, "They are her son's 'toys' and she may make use

of them as she wishes."

Virginia was impressed, "She really is David's mother." Yvonne tilted

her head back and opened her mouth as the cock above her began to

spurt its orgasm over her face and chest.

The house was just a normal middle class residence that had been owned

by the Family, from acquiring a woman and her daughter years ago.

With a couple of quick renovations so that it was literally a huge

room for pleasure and a smaller space to the side that was merely for

watching and analyzing. The basement had been turned into a small gym

so Yvonne's body could be sculptured into the curves that David's

mother had. Even her food intake was measured so she gained just the

right amount of extra food so those hips filled out while her stomach

flattened and the thighs firmed.

It had only been a month and Virginia guessed Yvonne was nearly ready

to head back to the compound.

"Since it was years ago that she had last been in the Family, we only

had to add your likeness to her programming."

It was the one thing that made Virginia wince, the only other person

Yvonne would know when she returned to the compound was Virginia.

Both of their images were ingrained upon her mind. Her son was the

ultimate man, her image of god on earth, and she loved him and his

cock. Virginia was her son's mate, the head of the slaves whom could

hurt or pleasure her as needed. They both had total control of her

body and soul, her mind though independent only thought how to give

both of them pleasure that they may want.

There was one last item to do before the project could be claimed

finished, Virginia had to again punish Yvonne as she had done years

ago to David's mom. It was something that could not be told or

taught, that fear and love for the pain-pleasure that her son's lover

could only give.

The teenage boy left with a huge smile as another immediately stepped

into the room with an equally large grin, his cock already hard and

aiming at the mature woman kneeling before him. This was his heaven

on earth and his sixth time with Yvonne.

Virginia returned to the handwritten notes that the Trainer and

several of her girls had taken while the trainer watched as Yvonne

made love the the ninth cock in just over an hour.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXXI (Part 3)

It had been a couple of days since a woman has visited her, and nearly

a full day since David had come to her. But when her son's mistress,

his mate, came into her room she bolted upright in bed. Already her

nipples hardened and her sex tingle at the visit.

"Oh Virginia," the middle-aged woman rolled off the bed and quickly

opened a drawer filled with lingerie, she sat down on a chair next to

the dresser and began to pull on stockings. She looked embarrassed to

be seen without her lingerie for her son's girlfriend. She was

conscious of her aging body and knew both her son and his girlfriend

enjoyed her in sexy lingerie.

"Please come in dear, I never expected you."

"Thats fine." Virginia came over and stood next to the woman watching

her rush to put on her fine undergarments. "I wanted to chat with you

about David."

She looked up at her son's first love and saw that the woman was

almost sad and it puzzled her, how could anyone be sad when they were

the most important person in her son's Family?

"Hand me those white stockings mom." She gave Virginia the extra pair

and then finished pulling on her own black set.

A hand came down upon her head and stroked her hair gently, "Your son

loves you very much." She beamed with pleasure at the woman, wanting

her son to love her forever, she would do anything to accomplish this.

The hand turned to a claw and yanked back the head. Virginia's mouth

came down and a tongue was roughly inserted into the surprised woman's

mouth. "That was so you to remember who is in charge around here

slut."

She gasped, her lips still tingling from the kiss, "David is in

charge!"

A hand came around and slapped her face, "Who is in charge when our

Master is not here?"

She paused long enough for the hand to again strike her painfully.

Virginia growled through clenched teeth and began to drag the woman

back to bed by her disheveled hair. "You are one slut that needs to

learn her place!"

Virginia threw the woman upon the bed and jumped upon her back.

"Please Virginia!" Hands roughly pulled her arms back and she felt

her own stocking binding her wrists together. My god, what has gotten

into her son's girlfriend! Virginia can't do this, she was David's

mother!

Virginia stood back off the bed and off the surprised bound woman and

began to remove her very stylish and sexy dress skirt and blouse.

"I'm going to teach you just who is more important to David than you

cow."

The skirt had a cloth belt that Virginia retrieved when she was

finally naked. "Bitch!" The arm came around and the cloth bit into

the soft flesh of the raised bottom.

She screamed a piercing scream, hoping her son would hear and save her

from his girlfriends torture. Again and again the hand descended

until it felt as if her ass was raw. It never stopped, no matter what

she screamed or how loud she begged, Virginia seemed uncaring. It

wasn't the woman that she had come to love as her son had.

It seemed like only a second passed when something was pushing roughly

into her anus. Virginia shoved without reservation the tiny white

smooth vibrator till only the last half inch of it was outside of the

tiny tight round muscle.

The screaming became a shriek when small clamps were applied to either

outer lips of her vagina. Virginia again started to beat the woman

with the cloth whip, the blows raining down upon the white exposed

skin while leaving only a red mark.

"Had enough slut?" She caught a look at the fierce sad eyes of her

son's girlfriend and her own fear doubled. She knew her torture was

not yet over.

"Please Virginia... please don't hurt me any more!" Tears were

rolling down her eyes, this pleading was not faked.

"Do you think I like to hurt you mother?" Virginia forced two of her

fingers into the vaginal hole and began to fuck her hard and fast.

"Do you think I enjoy doing this to you?" A hand reached beneath her

body and suddenly her nipples exploded with pain, fingernails bite

into her flesh.

Again she began to scream.

"Wake up and tell me who is 'First Cunt' in our family mom?" She

realized she had passed out, the pain, the humiliation and the

degradation just too much. The voice was her son's girlfriend, why

was she doing this? She knew the answer though, "You Virginia... you

are the 'First'!"

The clamps were removed from her vagina, "Good slut." Lips kissed her

tear stained cheeks. They felt so good, so warm and inviting.

"Please Virginia...?"

"Please what slut?"

"...Make love to me please!" She needed it. She wanted to feel like

a woman, to pleasure her son's mate. She started to push her sex

back, wanting the fingers to continue to pound into her. She needed

this pleasure so bad her sex was a furnace of pent up sexual heat.

Virginia's hand came down and she stroked the top of the bound woman's

head, "Good slut." She was already starting to moan with pleasure

just from squeezing the muscles in her love box and the gentle touch

of Virginia's petting hand.

The fingers were quickly withdrawn and the hand again turned into a

claw and lifted her head up, "I never gave you permission to orgasm

you slut!" She just whimpered as a response. "I'll let you come if

you tell me what I want to know."

The hand slipped between the cheeks of her bottom to begin fondling

her anus. Her son loved her asshole and thus it was very sensitive,

she could orgasm just from getting a good ass fucking. A finger began

to fuck her anus while that sexy moist tongue again slide between her

lips to fondle her tongue.

So close, she was so damn close to her orgasm. All it would take is a

few more seconds...! Hands were withdrawn and a foot kicked her body

over onto its side and again to push her up onto her back in an

awkward position as her hands were trapped behind her. A shuffling of

bodies and warm thighs pressed against her cheeks as a very wet well

trimmed pussy was placed just above her face.

"Tell me slut!" Two hands roughly twisted her nipples till she began

to scream. The body above lowered and her screams were instantly

muffled by the wet hot female flesh above her. She couldn't breath

and inadvertently tried to kick and bounce out from beneath the female

flesh to no success.

Virginia lifted herself from the woman's face and she gulped in the

air. Between gasps she asked, "What is it Virginia what is it you

want me to tell you?"

Again the pussy descended and didn't lift until David's mother thought

she could not last another second. "You know what it is you slut!

Just tell me!" Again she was suffocated by the beautiful vagina.

Again gasping, "I don't know, really I don't!" She was crying now,

not able to understand why her son's beautiful and loving girlfriend

would try to kill her.

"You don't?" The voice was softer, gentler, and the body didn't

descend.

"No! God help me, its true!"

The slim sexy naked body slid off her, spun and lay down above her.

This time it was gentle, softer feminine touch as Virginia gently

rubbed her trimmed bush into the softer volumptious woman's below her.

That scent! Again it was beginning to fill the air in the room,

heightening her sexual awareness. Her body was already responding,

her nipples feeling like iron nails pushing into Virginia's body

above, her sex that had been very wet and hot suddenly over boiled

with its new temperature. She knew what it was called, she craved it,

lived for it. And it had been her beautiful and thoughtful son that

had created it for her, for her to enjoy it. God she loved him,

lusted after him!

Virginia began to wiggle above her, her sex pressing into her own.

Both body broke out in a sweat and and either sex was hyper sensitive

to stimulation.

"Ask David", gasped Virginia nearly lost to the scent, "how to make

more 'Toilet Water'!" Was that what she had hurt her about, what her

son's lover wanted to know? Only that? Her mouth began to kiss and

suck the smooth shoulder of the other woman while her legs wrapped

around the tiny waist above her. She was so close, her orgasm fast

approaching.

"Anything Virginia... just make me come!" The two ladies screamed out

in unison.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXXII (Part 3)

Tony smiled watching the video of Yvonne and Virginia while Virginia

sat across from him, ignoring the television. "She really thinks

she's David's mom huh?"

"Completely." She knew her face was flush from his watching her in

the throes of the 'Waters' passion. Silly of course, she knew, since

nothing like modesty was worth keeping as a member of the Family.

"You did a great job with her." Tony reached down and squeezed his

hard shaft and heard Virginia gasp. Looking up towards her, Virginia

was watching his hand, licking her lips.

She was acting like a new addition to the Family, she felt her body

respond without the incentive of the 'Water' just with the knowledge

that Tony, the only cock really left in the Family, was sexually

excited at watching her perform with Yvonne.

"She looks different?"

What? Oh Yvonne on the video. Virginia remembered that Tony had not

seen the Senator's wife for several weeks. "Yes, wider of hips and a

flatter stomach. The trainer did a great job."

Tony know her gaze was focused upon his sex and he nonchalantly opened

his robe and began to stroke his cock.

Virginia remembered the feel of that hard cock as it had invaded her

body, how it set off a score of orgasms through her. Of course she

had been under the influence, but it had felt wonderful all the same.

She pulled her eyes from him and looked out the wide window and

watched the billowing snow. "To her, she is David's mother."

"And your age difference?"

Virginia shrugged, while thinking of that cock forcing itself past her

anal ring remembering that exquisite pain, "She isn't really his mom,

to her my age is exactly what it should be." She froze when she heard

Tony moan lightly, obviously from his self manipulation. "If this

works David will be deluded into thinking it is the past while Yvonne

will think it is the present."

"Perfect. Anything else I should know?"

How much I want your cock in me, thought Virginia? "No, nothing.

Yvonne is ready."

What is the matter with me, she thought, I hate Tony's guts!

"Then we are finished, we can proceed with the final step?"

"Yes."

"Than there is really only one thing I want you to do, get your ass

over here and suck me off."

She had heard correctly and it made her feel both angry and incredible

at the same time. The nerve of Tony, contradicting David's explicit

orders so blatantly!

Virginia felt her feet turn her about but she could only look down at

the carpet and not at Tony as she took the few steps to return before

him. In her expensive skirt and blouse suit with matching lingerie

and heels, she knelt down and didn't hesitate to take the man's cock

into her mouth, the one whom she feared and hated all at once.

There was no water in the air to cloud her judgment, nor was she under

any power that Tony possessed, she only answered to David. Virginia

began to give the best blowjob of her life, wanting to pleasure this

wonderful cock in a way that felt natural to her. She needed a man,

any man, it had been too long that she has slept with only women.

Up and down, slowly. Side to side. Tony responded by pumping his

hips in time with her movements. Virginia fondled his balls in one of

her free hands while the other slide up her skirt, into her French cut

panties and fucked herself with two fingers even as Tony's cock fucked

her face.

It took a long while, and didn't have the rushed anxiousness of the

'Waters' persuasion, until Tony grasped Virginia's head in both hands

and began to shoot his sperm against the back of her throat.

She loved it.

His strong hands, his pulsating member, the thick salty spend filling

her mouth and stomach. This was her place.

"Aggrhhh, that was great!" She licked him clean, feeling wonderful at

the compliment. "You haven't lost your touch after licking all that

pussy rather than sucking cock." Virginia simply smiled at him as she

sat back on her heels and wiped the saliva and male sperm from her

lips and chin. "When this is all over I may actually keep your old
cunt as a plaything!"

Tony's bare foot came up and non too gently kicked Virginia backwards

upon her ass a few feet away. She sat stunned both by his words and

actions. He, on the other hand, laughed as he stood, retied his robe

and left the room.

Behind her Virginia was making grunting noises upon the television as

Yvonne was sucking on her ear. Tears came to her eyes and her passion

for cock disintegrated.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXXIII (Part 3)

It was nearly done. The future of the family depended upon the

successful completion of their plan. Tony stood off to the side of

the room watching nervously as Virginia helped Yvonne to dress in an

outfit that David's mother had worn just after he had developed the

'Toilet Water' so many years before.

With gentle touches, little kisses and small complimentary comments

Virginia helped Yvonne dress for her 'son'.

Yvonne on the other hand, was extremely excited, her son had called

for her, wanted her. Her body was already trembling, her sex had

drenched the inside of her naked thighs and even the top of the

stockings, the nipples threatened to poke through the chemise.

Her son's girlfriend didn't help when she frequently tweaked those

nipples through the fabric, tickled the enlarged clitoris and pinched

her bottom. And both ladies could not get enough of the others mouth,

as they engulfed either tongue and lips. Virginia was naked and acted

like she was a servant helping the King's mistress to dress, with a

giggle David's mother realized this had some truth in it.

It had been her son's friend, the man in the corner, that had come to

tell her to prepare herself for her son. It had only been a couple of

days since she tasted and enjoyed her son's cock, it had been too long

for her. Every so often Virginia would whisper in her ear, "Don't

forget about the 'Toilet Water'." God, how could she! Other than

David, it was the next most important thing in her life.

She would do what Virginia wanted though, not wanting to be punished

again as she had been before. What did it matter to her if she asked

her son for the silly formula or not.

Virginia stood back and appraised Yvonne and knew she was as ready as

she would ever be. She nodded to Tony and he nodded back before

turning and leaving the room.

"Through here." Virginia guided the woman to a single small door in

the room and told her, "He's probably asleep, but I think his mother
knows how to wake him up." The two ladies laughed gently, sharing a

moments look.

David's mother wrapped her arms about Virginia and gave her a big hug

before she whispered in the woman's ear, "I love you like a daughter
Virginia." She let the woman go and pulled open the door.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXXIV (Part 3)

David awoke and smelled a familiar scent from his distant past,

perfume and clean skin. A warm body lay snuggled next to his and a

soft hand fondled his flaccid cock. A tongue traced the shape of his

ear and a warm fresh breath breathed upon him. It was strange, it

reminded him of something. Someone.

Turning his head he saw his mother's face with her closed eyes and

open mouth. "Mom!" A wave of love and lust shot through him.

Virginia watched very nervous from beyond the new one-way mirror that

had been installed. Tony was the only other person in the room with

her.

Through the speaker below the window Yvonne's voice came out loud and

clear as she whispered to her 'son', "Morning honey. Did you miss

mommy?" She pressed her lips to David's.

Behind the kiss he asked, "But...!" Her tongue spared with his and

her warm soft body against his was causing a reaction long thought

lost.

"Hush," she whispered her face an inch from his, "I have missed you so

much." David's eyes closed and he was still laying back with mouth

open, as Yvonne had left him.

Virginia saw that Yvonne's hand was filling with the rapidly growing

cock between David's legs. It was something David's mistress had not

seen for a very long time.

"Mommy needs her little boys pee-pee so bad darling!" She was rubbing

the head of his cock around her damp inner thigh, smearing it with her

excretions.

David opened his mouth and looked down incredulously at the hand that

could not reach all the way around his hard cock. Then he looked back

at his mother with a look of such lust that Virginia felt a wave of

shame for tricking him this way.

It had been a very long time, and even with his near intoxicated state

David was able to push his mother onto her back, slip between her

thighs and immediately insert himself into her vagina. Virginia

watched as David started to cry, his tears pouring down his cheeks in

confused happiness, even as his cock began to saw back and forth into

Yvonne's body.

Virginia stole a look at Tony and saw that he was watching intently

but it seemed like he could be watching television rather than a live

sex show. She was also well aware that if this plan succeeded, Tony

may well be the new head of the Family. And next to not having any

'Toilet Water' at all that was the most fearsome thought to her.

His dirty thin body moved back and forth between the voluptuous

thighs, his hard cock like iron as it brought extreme pleasure to the

woman below.

"Fill me David, please come in me!" Wailed the lingerie clad

middle-aged woman.

"So fucking good, so hot... so wet...!"

"For you baby, I'm wet for you David!"

Virginia felt her own tears rolling down her cheeks as the couple in

the next room continued to rock the huge bed. Since she was a pivotal

person in the plan that created this moment, she was directly

responsible for it. For that Virginia felt only humiliating shame.

The sight disgusted her.

"Oh god, I'm coming mom!"

"Yes David, come in mommy!" A second before David began to jerk his

body with is cocks release, Yvonne began to tremble with her own

orgasm.

Mother and son groaned and gasped with each spasm until they lay, side

by side facing each other, already spent.

Yvonne moved forwards and again slipped her tongue into David's

mouth. "Hum... that was great baby." She kissed his tears from his

cheeks without saying a word.

"Ask him cunt!" Growled Tony, though it was impossible for her to

hear him.

"Would you like to...", David giggled, a sound not heard for years in

the house, and Virginia guessed that Yvonne had clenched his softened

member within her womanly folds for the rest of the question.

"I'm not sure if I can mom. Oh!"

Virginia saw Yvonne's buttocks clench again and again as she squeezed

David's cock within her cunt. "Oh mommy!" His hips began to pump and

Yvonne smiled hugely at her success.

She rolled her 'son' onto his back and straddled his hips, Yvonne

began to fuck the man beneath her with a renewed vigor. Her

volumptious body bouncing with a lewd seductiveness. David played

with Yvonne's breasts and nipples all the while she was bouncing up

and down upon his body.

"I'm going to come again mom!" So soon, thought Virginia? David used

to be able to last half an evening of straight fucking just before his

mother and sister died.

"Come on mummies titties baby!"

"Okay mom, hurry I'm close!" He was practically shouting.

Yvonne scrambled off and wrapped her medium sized soft breasts about

his slimy cock even as the first spurt hit her chin. Again and again

Virginia could see it shoot its seed upon Yvonne's chest and breasts
until David again stopped pumping his hips and Yvonne stopped jerking

his shaft with her flesh globes.

"Damn was that great!"

"Was it ever darling."

Yvonne was rubbing the sperm into the white smooth flesh of her round

breasts and David watched every second. She then angled down and

began to lap at her son's cock and balls like a puppy dog, all the

while moaning at the great taste of his and her mingled.

Finally it was over, David was finished for some time to come. Yvonne

lay between his legs, her face so close to his crotch that his soft

member was laying upon her cheek and ear.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXXV (Part 3)

"Honey?"

"Here it comes," said Virginia.

"About fucking time," growled Tony.

"How do you make the 'Toilet Water'?"

David sat up on his elbows and looked down at the content well-fucked

woman and frowned.

"Oh shit!" Tony knew that this was the moment, all hinged on this one

question.

Virginia imagined that a cloud that had been over David's eyes lifted

and he looked sternly down at the woman between his legs. She knew a

second before Tony, it had not worked!

"What did you say?"

"I'm just wondering how do you make 'Toilet Water' honey?"

"Leave!" It was the voice of David from years past, dominant and it

didn't leave room for discussion.

Tony turned and left the room with a fierce, "Fuck!" He was not happy

at all!

Yvonne looked surprised at her 'son's order but smiled sweetly at him

before crawling off the bed and leaving by the same way she had come

in by. David was her Master after all!

A few seconds after the door closed Virginia came walking into the

room through another door. "David." She said simply, terrified.

He looked up at his girlfriend angrily and didn't even seem to notice

she was naked.

"Are you responsible for this fiasco?"

Virginia sunk to her knees before him, her head at the top of his

feet. She trembled and answered, "Yes Master."

"What is her name?"

"Yvonne Benson." He nodded and silently stood and pulled on some

loose pants and tee-shirt.

David looked less than pleased. "Did Tony help you?"

"It was the both of our ideas Master." She felt scared, knowing that

the awful outcome of her life could become reality with only a word

from David. Virginia would be an sexual animal without the 'Water' to

sustain her.

He had just been told that his best friend and girlfriend, the two

sub-chiefs of the family conspired to undermine him. The two

individuals he most trusted!

She saw his feet as he stood next to her and Virginia dared look up

and was startled to see that he was as white as a sheet and clenching

his chest.

David fell back upon the hard floor as Virginia scrambled to his side.

"Master", she screamed?

The door was jerked open and Tony came running in with Yvonne and Mary

in tow. The two ladies looked horrified as Tony screamed out, "The

formula David... what's the formula?"

Before any of them reached his side, David pulled Virginia's face down

to him and he whispered into her ear.

With a gasp of air escaping from his lungs, David fell back to the

floor as the bodies rushed to his side.

David was dead.

Mary began to cry loudly and violently. Yvonne screamed a long

terrible wail that seemed to go on forever. In the doorway, three

other slaves clenched each other and sobbed.

Tony shouted, "Damn damn damn...!"

Then he saw Virginia's shocked sad look and stopped shouting. "What

happened you bitch, what did David say?"

Virginia could barely hear him through the sounds of grief in the

room. Almost a whisper she replied, "David told me the secret of

'Toilet Water'."



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXXVI (Part 4)

The first time Nolan noticed a change around his home was when his mom
and dad were starting to argue nearly each day. At first they tried

to keep their voices down and to keep their disagreements behind

closed doors. Within a few weeks the arguments had turned to

screaming and would erupt anywhere within their house, often before

their son in the living room or at a meal. It was embarrassing and

very troubling, to the teenager, to say the least.

Mom, soon, started to sleep in the spare room. Dad worked longer

hours and Nolan rarely saw him any longer as he avoided his wife and

his home as much as possible.

This was all going on during a time that should be one of the happiest

of Nolan's life. Just a month before the arguments began, Nolan was

accepted into the prestigious school for gifted minds. At fifteen

years old he already had one doctorate in Chemistry and half finished

another in Biology. His favorite topic in school was DNA.

It didn't take long for the gifted young man to learn the reason of

the arguments, or at least the main reason that they argued, it was

sex. Or lack thereof.

Thinking back about the time when the arguments started behind closed

doors, Nolan realized his mother had started to change in some way.

Around her home she dressed in a way that most would consider "over

dressed", with expensive fashionable clothing, jewelry and well

applied make-up. She also catered to her only child much more,

attending to his every need without his even asking. On top of all

that, she put distance between her friends and family, until they

became virtual strangers in only a matter of weeks. It was done so

subtle that Nolan didn't even notice until after the shouting started.

From all the fragments of screaming matches Nolan has been able to

listen too, it seems that his father suspects his mother of having an

affair because she will no longer "make love" with him. Remembering

the recent changes in his mother, Nolan suspects it may be true.

"There are a couple of people coming over tonight, can you be home

honey?" His dad was out of town, which was happening more times than

not in the last short while, and his mother stood looking anxiously in

his doorway.

Nolan, though brilliant, was still a teenager with all the trials and

tribulations thereof. He made sure his skin magazine was properly

hidden beneath a pile of clothing before he nodded to his mother.

"And Nolan, please dress nice. These are very important people."

"Okay mom." Though he should have thought more about it, he was too

preoccupied with his dirty magazine and his throbbing cock to realize

no meeting like this one has ever happened before.

She turned about but suddenly stopped and made one final, puzzling

statement. "Whatever happens tonight dear, just remember I love you."

He thought he saw a tear in her eye as she closed the door behind her.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXXVII (Part 4)

Nolan stood when the small group of ladies came into the living room.

His mother was smiling hugely, proudly, towards her son as she

directed the ladies from the foyer. "Here he is."

For some strange reason, Nolan felt as if he was a prize mare being

shown off.

A very old woman, possibly even in her seventies, came forward and

extended her hand. Nolan took it immediately and found her long slim

hand to be strong but cold. He looked up into the woman's intelligent

and commanding eyes and realized this was the woman whom his mother
was fawning over. Whomever she was, he thought, she was used to

getting her own way.

For a very long awkward moment, her piercing gaze looked into Nolan's

brown eyes, as if to assess him.

Finally she pulled her hand from his and turned to sit in the sun by

the window. Nolan realized that the woman, though ancient by his

standards, was probably very attractive in her younger years. She

wore expensive and immaculate clothing that seemed to accentuate her

tall slim figure.

His mother came to stand next to him and placed her arm about his

shoulder proudly, "Nolan I'd like you to meet Virginia." The older
woman wore a slight smile and was watching him like a predator.

Within her commanding gaze he noted, with surprise, what could only be

a deep sadness.

"Nice to meet you Virginia." He turned to the others but found that

they had already found a seat or were standing behind Virginia. All

were older than his mother but each was attractive in some mature way.

His mom directed him to a seat next to the old woman and sat next to

him, holding his hand in both hers on her lap.

The setting and the actions of those about him caused the hairs on the

back of his neck to stand up and he realized he was afraid.

No one spoke and all seemed to be waiting on Virginia to say

something, anything. The large grandfather clock in the corner ticked

away.

Finally, she spoke, "I've come a long way to meet you Nolan."

This only puzzled him further. "Yes mamme."

"Is there anything in life you want Nolan?"

Strange question, "I am not sure I understand?"

She thought for a second, "If I could grant you anything you want what

would that be?"

Nolan the teenager answered with a smile, "I always wanted to be a

rock star!"

It seemed as if the air in the room became thick and all the ladies

held their breath and looked at Virginia, waiting. Suddenly the old
woman began to break out laughing, with the others joining in. The

awkwardness disappeared as soon as Virginia had started to laugh.

Finally settling down Virginia asked, "Why do you want to be a rock

star Nolan?"

Was she serious he thought? It wasn't a question he ever thought

about. He certainly never wanted to be a rock star just to make music

or even to be a celebrity. He knew why. With a shrug he answered,

"Rock stars get lots of girls."

He expected the ladies to again break out laughing and was surprised

when they only just smiled sweetly at him. His mother pressed his

hand into her lap fiercely.

Virginia sat looking again at him for several minutes before slowly

standing, "I think you and your mother should come visit me my dear, I

think we both can learn much from each other."

Nolan stood and took the offered hand for a brief handshake.

Virginia, followed by the other ladies left. His mother also

following. He could hear them parting at the door before his mother
returned.

"That was strange." It had been.

She looked nervous and tried to smile, "I think you will like where

Virginia lives dear. I've never been there but I'm told its an island

somewheres off the west coast." His mom came up to him and gave him a

big motherly hug and whispered in his ear, "I'm so proud of you Nolan

and I love you so much."

He hugged her back, still puzzled, "I love you too mom."



The Sweet Smell of Lust - XXXXVIII (Part 4)

Nolan sat at the window seat and watched as the plane banked to

starboard as it descended for a landing. His mother next to him was

looking over his shoulder.

What he saw was a small island, but still several kilometers wide,

with bright green ancient trees and bright white sandy beaches and

gray rocky spurts that could almost be called mountains. It was, by

anyones standards, beautiful. There was a large compound with small

communities with comfortable houses leading up from the south beach to

a huge home nearly at the top of the cliff and at the edge of the

large compound. He saw tiny ants that could only be people moving

about, not many but enough. The island was certainly not crowded.

This was the first time he had ever been out of his own country and

expected Canada to be colder with snow, even in the middle of August,

with primitive dwellings and vehicles. What he has seen so far was

more luxurious than even his own grand home and neighborhood.

His mother, having not said a thing since they boarded the smaller but

still comfortable plane in Vancouver. She seemed nervous, scared

while also being anxious.

Virginia, it seemed, was a very powerful and rich woman whom even put

his own mother on awkward footing.

As the plane came down and bounced a few times upon the four foot

waves, Nolan watched his mother. She looked more nervous the closer

they had come to this island but each query had resulted in nothing to

give a reason for her attitude.

Eventually the plane taxied to a long floating dock, stopped and was

tied up. Several ladies stood in the breezy morning waiting for him

and his mother to reveal themselves.

Nolan was nearly to the open hatch when his mother stopped him

suddenly and turned to force her son to look her in the eye. "I don't

know why Virginia wanted you Nolan, but promise me that when we leave

here you will love and respect me?"

The comment, request, startled him. "Of course mom."

She shook him with her strong hands, "Promise me!"

"Okay ok, I promise." She let him go.

As soon as he was standing upon the rocky dock a very attractive woman

came forwards to shake his hand, "You must be Nolan. We have all been

very anxious for your arrival!" She had a warm hand but not as warm

as those green eyes of hers, he thought. "These ladies will see that

your baggage will follow us."

She turned and lead him to the shore and a waiting Hummer. "My name

is Rachel by the way." She saw that he was looking over his shoulder

for his mom, "Not to worry, she will also follow us soon enough.

Another girl will guide her."

Rachel drove like a crazy woman up the winding hill towards the top of

the mountain, though the compound gates and directly towards the huge

house. She kept giving him small glances at every opportunity, while

biting her bottom lip.

"Does this place have a name?"

Rachel nodded, "It used to have an old Indian name but now we call it

'Isle of the Sisterhood' but some of the older ladies call it the

'Family Isle'."

Nolan watched the scenery as they drove quickly by. With all its

comfortable splendor and expensive, but subtle, elegance he was

startled that he only saw women! And of those, most of them were in

their forties and above.

He started to think this was some type of female cult yet he had to

ask, "Is there no men here?"

Rachel seemed amused by the question, "Oh sometimes we have a couple

guests for a few days but there hasn't been a man here in nearly a

year. And never has a man lived here with us."

She spun the wide vehicle and skidded to a stop next to a tall totem

pole. Rachel saw his interest and said, "Keeps evil from entering."

She took his hand and practically skipped as she lead him to the wide

open porch and huge doors.

It opened before they got there, "Nolan, a pleasure." One of the

ladies that had accompanied Virginia but had said nothing, she must

have been in her sixties, short round of face but with a pleasant

smile on her lips. "I'm Mary, Virginia is reading in the garden."

Rachel let go of his hand and started to back away, "I hope I'll see

you later Nolan. It was a pleasure to meet you." She winked, "If you

want to see me again don't forget my name."

She left before he had a chance to say goodbye.

"That girl has so much energy." Laughed Mary. "Come in. Come in!"

She linked her arm into his and used his youth and strength while

leading him through the wide hallways of the huge house. "Since our

visit a week ago I had a house prepared for you. I'm sure you will be

happy with the arrangement."

"What about mom?"

"Oh hush. Your mom is fine." Her way had a calming effect upon him

and Nolan found himself immediately enjoying Mary's company. "Its you

that interests Virginia."

Several minutes later the wall opened up and he found himself standing

in a huge lush forest. Birds were squawking and the insects were

buzzing and crawling about while the wind sang through the dense

vegetation. It wasn't just a garden, it was a virtual forest thought

the teenager.

A thin path lead them through winding obstacles till Mary and Nolan

emerged into a grass cleaning with a natural fountain. Virginia was

seated upon a thick blanket reading a small book while another older
woman was sipping wine and drawing a sketch of a bird a few feet away

on a tree limb.

Mary cleared her throat but Virginia never even looked up, it was the

other woman that did. "Oh my." She put down her pencil and paper and

reached out to take the elder woman's ankle in a soft touch. "Our

esteemed visitor is here dear."

Finally Virginia looked up. "Nolan! A pleasure." She slowly stood

up upon her bare feet and came towards him while patting down her long

skirt, "Your trip was uneventful I assume?"

"Yes mamme."

She laughed lightly, "Call me Virginia dear, after all its my name."

The other two ladies laughed gently at this joke. "Come, let us see

about getting some food for lunch, you must be starved."

Still feeling out of his element, Nolan walked next to Virginia while

Mary trailed a few feet behind. Virginia asked about the flight and

then about his schooling, he answered all her questions. When she

asked about girls, he only blushed and answered honestly that he

didn't have a girlfriend.

Virginia laughed and leaned down to whisper none too quietly in his

ear, "Not to worry dear, I'm sure any woman on this island would love

to be your girlfriend."

He thought she was joking.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - IL (Part 4)

It had only been the three of them during lunch, which consisted

mostly of fruit and salads. Another woman served them and then

discreetly disappeared.

As the time expanded Nolan found himself becoming relaxed about

Virginia and opened up with his answers to her many questions. Mary

and Virginia often made small jokes that, at first, he didn't

understand. But soon he understood the delicate humor of their jokes

and he found himself laughing along by the end of the meal.

Whenever he asked anything about the island or about the ladies upon

it, Virginia only said, "Tomorrow dear, you just rest tonight. All

will be answered tomorrow."

Later, Virginia and Mary walked him about the huge house, larger than

even he thought as much of it was built into the mountain, and showed

him many different things. There was expensive artifacts from

historical periods that Nolan had studied in school. There was even

an abundant amount of gems and minerals laying about, gold and silver

to be exact. No one seemed to think anything about the wealth

presented so openly.

It was one long hallway that Nolan found himself so interested in, it

was filled with pictures. "Yes, that was me... many many years ago."

Nolan had been right, Virginia had been a very attractive woman.

Beautiful.

Not to be outdone, Mary waved Nolan over, "That was me." She pointed

to a picture. While Virginia had been gorgeous, Mary had been cute.

Nolan guessed Mary had been in her teens when the picture was taken.

"Who is the girl standing next to you?"

Mary smiled and stared at the picture, her mind far away, "My sister."

Nearly all the photos had women in them, and only women. At the end

of the hallway a young man smiled at the head of a table with four

others, including a very young sexy Virginia, his eyes twinkling

towards the camera.

"Who is this?" It was the only male that he had yet noticed in any of

the pictures.

Virginia answered somberly, "That was David. I will tell you all

about him tomorrow Nolan." She lead him away.

An hour later with his feet and legs aching, Nolan hugged both Mary

and Virginia as they took their leave of them. A older woman silently

lead him out of the house and down the hill to a moderate sized log

house. She simply opened the door waited till he entered and then

turned about to walk back up the hill.

Inside he found a teenage girl smiling hugely at him, "Oh Nolan-san,

very pleased to meet you." Getting closer, he discovered that she was

Asian and by her first comment, Japanese. "My name is April."

"Hi April."

"I am to make you happy and see that you do not need anything while

you stay here."

"I'm fine thank you April." She turned a light on and the shadows

disappeared to reveal her tiny frame with short black hair and big

bright brown eyes. "I am a little tired."

"Of course Nolan-san. This way please." She wore a loose long skirt

that seemed to float about her as she walked, she was very fluid in

her movements, as she lead him up the stairs to a large very

comfortable room.

Nolan even tired as he was could not help but appreciated Aprils

natural beauty or her pleasant manner.

A bed had already been turned down for him, "My I please you more

Nolan-san?"

He wasn't sure what she meant but thought it better not to assume.

"Is mom staying here April?"

She looked puzzled, "I am sorry Nolan-san, I do not know where you

momma stays tonight."

He felt a little anxious not knowing where his mother was, but he had

come to trust Virginia and knew that she would not allow anything

untoward to happen to his mother. "I guess thats okay, I'll find out

tomorrow. Thanks April."

She beamed, "No. Thank you Nolan-sama." Her teeth were bright white

and he liked her smile very much.

A few seconds passed and there was awkwardness suddenly, Nolan wanted

to get undressed and go to bed but April still stood smiling before

him. "Anything else April?"

"Thank you, no, Nolan-san." She suddenly noticed his eyes shifting

about and realized what he wanted, or thought she did. "May I help?"

She made motions with her hands as if to help him undress.

Nervously and a little quick he answered, "No. Thank you. I am fine

April."

She nodded her smile slowly dissolving, "I be in room next door if you

desire anything Nolan-san."

"Thank you again, guess I'll see you tomorrow morning?"

She left with a puzzled look on her face.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - L (Part 4)

The fresh air and quiet of the island, other than nature, seemed to

cause Nolan to have one of the best night sleeps in memory. He took a

long hot shower in the private bathroom, dressed in clothes that had

been set out from his suitcase and descended downstairs.

Rachel was setting the table while April was feeding a bird that sat

on the sill of the open window. "Morning."

They both spun about and both smiled hugely. "Morning Nolan!"

"Morning Nolan-san."

"You slept late and we didn't know what you liked for breakfast?"

Asked Rachel.

He sat at the table and replied, "Normally I just have a bowl of

cereal or something."

"Coming right up Nolan-san." April flowed out of the dining room

silently.

Rachel came over and sat near him. "Sleep well?"

"Very." For some reason he felt very pleased with himself, must have

been the good night sleep. "I'm surprised to see you so soon." He

had thought she was a driver or something and never gave her parting

comment any thought.

She smiled, "Pleased to see me?"

He shrugged, "Sure."

"April was concerned since you did not enjoy her last night, she

thought maybe I would be more to your liking." Rachel was sitting

forwards, her face expectant.

Nolan was suddenly confused, how was he supposed to enjoy April last

evening, he wondered? And how could Rachel be more to his liking?

Rachel saw his confusion and misunderstood, "She thought you did not

like Japanese girls."

That caused a frown in Nolan. A genius he may be but he was

completely naive when it came to women.

Rachel understood suddenly and explained once more, bluntly, "That you

did not take her to bed with you, she thought you did not like her."

Now he understood, April had thought to join him last night! She was

not just a maid or a servant but also was a bed companion. He could

have had intercourse with her last night. On top of that, Rachel was

here now to also be available to him if he wanted her.

He sat there with mouth open in total astonishment. Even in his

wildest fantasies he never imagined something so blatantly sexual.

The two women, April probably his age and Rachel ten years older, were

more than happy to sleep with him.

Not sleep, Nolan corrected himself, but to fuck.

That last word blasted his consciousness and he sat stunned.

April appeared and set a bowl and spoon before him, then she set a

large glass of orange juicee next to that. All the while he sat wide

eyed and open mouth.

It had to be some type of strange cult was what he was thinking,

because women don't act like this where he lived.

Rachel was confused at his response and retreated to the kitchen, with

April, to retrieve their meals.

Soon they joined him and the three ate in silence.

Only when he was finished did Rachel finally mention, "Virginia

requested that you join her when your finished your meal Nolan."

He nodded and allowed Rachel to lead him back up the hill to the large

house.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LI (Part 4)

Nolan was left waiting by himself for a long while in a large well

furnished library until Virginia finally joined him. She came in

wearing a flowing white silk robe that billowed about her as she came

in. He was startled to realize Virginia wore nothing beneath it and

with the light just right the silk was translucent enough to see

through. Her old body was exposed if he choose to look, which he

found that he couldn't help it.

"Ah Nolan dear." She sat down across from him and set the tray of tea

down between them. Virginia began to pour two cups for them. "One

lump or two?"

He suddenly blushed and thought she was speaking of Rachel and April.

"The tea dear, sugar?" He nodded and she handed him the cup and

saucer.

She took her own and sat back, crossed her legs which exposed one long

limb nearly to her hip, and watched him minutely. "We need your help

Nolan, and I'm going to convince you to stay and join us before

telling you what we need from you."

Nolan sat silently remembering that Rachel said only girls lived on

the island. "But I'm a guy?"

Virginia smiled privately, "One of the requirements that was necessary

when we went looking for you."

It was all very puzzling to him, as he knew it was supposed to be.

Nolan also knew it was pointless to ask what the help was, instead he

asked, "What are you going to do to convince me to stay?"

Virginia smiled and answered honestly, "By telling you all our

secrets."

Some kind of secret woman cult he thought, "What secrets?"

"That every woman on this island is a slave to something called

'Toilet Water'." She watched him very closely.

'Slave'?

Virginia continued, "You remember that photo yesterday, of that

smiling young man in the picture - that was David. He created the

'Toilet Water' many years ago by mistake. I don't presume he was as

intelligent as you are Nolan, but he was a very bright young man."

"Was?"

"He died a few years ago." She looked down at her cup and was

suddenly saddened. After a deep breath she continued, "The scent of

'Toilet Water' did strange things to the ladies around him..."

"Do you mean you Virginia?"

"Yes I was one of first." Another sip. "... it heightened their

sexuality until they became fanatical for pleasure." He looked

confused and Virginia reworded what she said, "Every woman that

smelled the scent became very sexually excited."

She continued, "And every woman that smelled its scent, even once, was

immediately addicted and had to have a constant diet of the fumes

regularly. The odd thing, except to David, was that it only had this

affect on women never on men."

This whole trip, right down to this surreal conversation was like

being in some strange dream. This like this don't just happen in the

world Nolan lived in.

"Time went by and David claimed many women for his slaves, he even

created a discreet business that sold 'Toilet Water' only to the

super-rich so they too could have slaves."

"When he died, David told me the formula that created this addictive

musk. I changed how David's 'Family' was and now we live in a nearly

man-free society."

Birds were singing outside the window and a kite could be seen flying

upon the breeze somewheres down the hill.

Lets just pretend everything Virginia said was true Nolan thought,

"Why me?"

"Because of your abilities, your genius in Bio-Chemistry and because

your a man." She hide nothing from him. "We rarely acquire new

ladies for our Sisterhood but we seduced your mother to have her

complacent in introducing you to me and to have you travel to my

isle."

Nolan's heart beat faster and he felt suddenly scared, "Seduced?"

Virginia nodded, "Yes Nolan. She too is addicted to 'Toilet Water'."

It hit him hard, she was given this addictive drug because of his

abilities. Nolan prayed this was all some joke or a dream, anything

but reality.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LII (Part 4)

Nolan's mother had taken her son out of school, yes genius's go to

school during the summer, and on this small trip. A "short trip" she

had called it, but Virginia had promised that he would enjoy it so

much he would not ever want to leave. The young man wanted to leave

right now actually.

"Would you like to see your mother dear?" Asked the old, anything but

matronly woman.

He nodded, anxious to see a familiar face, anxious to know if his

mother was okay.

A second later Nolan's mom came into the room staring at the floor

before her. Virginia never said a word but continued to sip her tea

as the younger woman came forward to stand between the two couches and

the two seated people.

Nolan looked at his mom and saw that she was wearing her nicest

outfit, expensive and seductive. It highlighted her amble breasts,

shapely legs and small waist he was startle to notice. She wore no

jewelry and her makeup was done sparsely.

"Have you never noticed dear, that your mother is a very attractive

woman?" Virginia was watching him watch her, while his mother only

watched her own feet in her black heels.

He never said anything but it was true, he never honestly noticed how

attractive she was. Oh, of course he knew she was pretty - the

prettiest mother at his school - yet not in a way that a man admires a

woman.

It startled him that he looked at her like that now.

Virginia, still looking at Nolan, ordered, "Tell your son what you

were doing since he last saw you?"

Without hesitation but in a tiny voice, "I have been in training to be

a good slave."

"Though we have not seduced many ladies in recent years, April being

the last, we have not forgotten the old ways."

"Tell your son what you will do for more 'Water'."

His mom never moved, "I would do anything."

"Do you know why we made you a slave?"

"To help convince my son to stay and help the Sisterhood."

"Only partially correct, what is the rest slave!" Virginia's voice

had taken on a new harsher quality to it.

"To make him happy."

Nolan had to break this spell she was in and his voice cracked, "Mom?"

She whispered in response, "Yes master?"

He sat back, his amazement complete. That word was so foreign to him,

coming from his own mother.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LIII (Part 4)

Virginia sat forwards and put both tea cups on the tray, stood, and

left silently with the tray in hand. Nolan was alone with his mother
whom had just confessed her only child as her 'Master'.

The air was suddenly thick, the sounds outside the room loud, his

mother rubbing her palms on the outside of her thighs.

"She is gone mom, you don't have to play this game any more?"

It was a futile attempt.

She finally looked up into her son's eyes and asked, "Is that what you

think? That this is all some type of game?" She sounded almost angry

with him.

He shrugged helplessly. "Mom, I don't know what they expect of

me...?" Or of her he wanted to add.

Her gaze softened and she smiled gently, "I was not sure when the

Sisterhood asked, but they were sure after this morning that you are

still a virgin right Nolan?"

He felt the blood flow to his cheeks, he felt embarrassed at his lack

of knowledge with regards to April and Rachel. He croaked, "Yes."

"Then they expect you to sit back and enjoy loosing your virginity

with me." She had said it so calmly, gently. As if she was

explaining the most mundane thing to a child.

She was his mother but all he could say, "What about dad?"

His mom came towards him till she stood above his seated form and

shrugged, "What about him. I no longer belong to him, only to the

Sisterhood... and you if you want me."

As if they had a will of their own, his eyes slowly descended and

again looked at his mother in a very naughty sort of way. She wore

black three-inch heels that highlighted her slim feet, tiny ankles and

shapely calves perfectly. The white colored nylons lead up to the hem

of her smoke colored skirt that started just above her knee. It was

tight without being obvious, and showed off her sexy hips, small round

stomach and tiny waist. A white blouse that was translucent enough to

reveal her white bra and silk undershirt beneath. It was a very

expensive outfit, as he knew his father had complained bitterly at her

expenses the last few weeks, but this looked fabulous in it.

When he was finished with his appraisal he returned to find her

smiling proudly at him. "I'm very glad you find me attractive honey."

She licked her lips and slowly bent forwards, eyes closing.

Nolan sat stunned as his own mother came face to face with him and her

lips suddenly touched his own. They were very moist, he remembered

the sight of her pink tongue as they licked at them, they were also

soft and very hot. Never before had the teenager been kissed by a

woman.

It was a sparse kiss, gentle with a promise of more. She pulled back

opened her eyes and smiled gently at her only child. "Did you like?"

He only nodded. He had, he was embarrassed to admit.

She stood back straight and without taking her eyes from his, she

lifted the hem of her skirt slowly till it rose just below the

junction where her thighs met her torso. It also revealed the nylons

were of the stocking type, that stopped mid-thigh and looked

incredible upon her. Those were what his favorite models in those

nude magazines wore and it caused a heated bolt of flame to shoot

through his body.

Slowly, she put both hands upon his slim shoulders then placed one

knee next to him then the other. His mother was suddenly seated

directly upon his lap, her face an inch from his. It was lewd, it was

immoral but he was startled to admit, it was very sexy.

She wiggled towards him slightly and he nearly jumped when he felt the

heat of her crotch press against his own. Rapidly his cock began to

fill and harden against her hot mound.

Blood again came to his face in embarrassment but his mom again leaned

in and he found her lips upon his own to distract him. This time the

kiss lasted longer, it was a kiss he had only imagined in fantasy. An

open mouthed kiss from a sexy woman.

Nolan knew he was awkward but she helped him without being obvious.

When his lips didn't part for her kiss, a tiny pink tongue gently

pried his dry lips apart and her head tilted so they lock mouths

perfectly. Then that same tongue, unexpectedly, slipped past both set

of lips and he felt it upon his own. It tasted wonderful, it felt

sensuous.

With both her hands she took his wrists in a feather touch and lifted

them from the couch. Slowly, simultaneously, she lowered them upon

her and placed her hands again upon his shoulders. Nolan found his

hands were touching her warm smooth sexy thighs and nylon stocking.

As a test he moved one up and the tips of his fingers felt bare skin

where the stocking ended.

As a response, his mother moaned lightly into his mouth and ground her

crotch into his own.

Soon, he was generously fondling her thighs, the first intimate touch

of a woman that his hands had ever experienced. He marveled in the

sexy nylon stockings but was thrilled every time he touched her bare

intimate skin. Especially since, each time he did she again moaned

and ground her hot sex mound into his painfully-hard cock.

When she finally pulled her face from him, he saw his saliva upon her

chin and that also caused his cock to jerk against her. She smiled

happily and asked, "How about we retire to your house?" Her eyes

spoke volumes and for once he wasn't embarrassed but excited.

"Okay." He realized he could barely speak, so excited that his one

word came out cracked.

She slowly stood back up and pulled her skirt back down her thighs.

But not before her son got a glimpse of her white panties and the dark

dampness between her thighs. She held a hand out to help him up, to

lead him to a moment in history for the young man.

He took it but asked as he was hauled up, "Mom are you under the drug

right now?" Nolan had to know if it was the 'Toilet Water' or him

that had caused her excitement.

She smiled sweetly and understood, his mom wrapped her arms about his

neck and pressed her sex body against his. Their faces were at the

same level without her heels on so she stood slightly higher than

Nolan. A soft kiss, a lovers kiss. "There is no 'Water' in the air

my love only the smell of my lust."

Nolan was confused until he realized there was a smell in the air, it

was a distinctive scent that was impossible to explain. Though he now

knew exactly what it was and it caused his cock to stay hard all the

way down the hill to his house.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LIV (Part 4)

Thankfully April nor Rachel were anywhere to be found, but they had

left the bedroom prepared for Nolan's return. The bed had been made

up but the sheets turned down. The windows were wide open to allow

the summer warmth in as well as the refreshing sea breeze. A tray of

fruit, water and small bite-sized cakes lay beside the bed.

It embarrassed him to know that someone knew of this union with his

own mother, he knew the taboo's placed upon his lust by society.

Though, probably not this society corrected Nolan.

His mother, on the other hand, came in and kicked off her shoes so she

was the same height at her son and again wrapped her arms about his

neck and pressed her body against his.

"Kiss me my lover!" His lips found hers and her tongue again slide

into his mouth. He pulled his lips from hers and began to kiss her

face and neck, it only seemed natural. She guided his face while

whispering, "I'm yours forever my son... lover... master! I'll do

anything to make you happy..."

She took one of his hands and pulled it behind her and placed it upon

her own ass. Nolan felt the soft firmness beneath his hand and forgot

her inviting neck as he tested and felt the one feminine check beneath

his hand.

The other hand, anxious now with the first taste of her bottom, began

to fumble with the buttons on the side of her skirt. She knew of his

haste but also of his inexperience. Gently she pulled away and stood

before the large open window, the sea at her back.

With a seductive smile both her hands began to slowly undo her gray

skirt while her only child practically panted with lust as he watched

her. She spread her legs wide allowing the bright sunshine to hint at

the curves still hidden by her skirt. Her son fell backwards until he

sat comically upon the end of the bed.

Nolan began to unbutton his own shirt, unzip his pants and pull his

clothing from his body as his mother stood a meter away. She didn't

dance about nor did she wink seductively, she never needed too. Her

slow deliberate motions revealed her sexy mature body inch by inch and

her patience had her son panting with desire.

When the skirt ended at her feet even the unexperienced Nolan knew the

dark patch upon her simple white cotton panties were from her own

desire. The knowledge gave him the last bit of nerve to drop his

underwear to the floor and leave him totally naked.

At seeing her son's thrusting hard penis, the middle-aged mother and

wife paused and stared. It was enough to again cause embarrassment in

the teenager and Nolan grabbed at the bedspread to cover his crotch.

Certainly it was a small cock, four and a half inches hard, and even

the genius Nolan had always been conscious of his size in relation to

those stories in some of his adult magazines.

With only her bra, panties and stockings Nolan's mom was a very

attractive sight. Her pause in the strip tease and its reaction in

her son finally registered and she realized what he must be thinking.

Nolan watched as she took the two steps to stand just before him,

"Darling?" She placed a hand upon his shoulder and shook him gently,

trying to get his gaze up to her own. "Honey, what's wrong?"

Nolan shrugged.

She tried to lift his chin so her son would look at her, to no

success. "Darling is it because I starred at you?"

He nodded affirmative.

His semi clothed mother smiled and reached down to one hand, ensuring

that his other still held the pillow in place. It would not do to

force him under any circumstances. Turning his palm upwards she

placed it between her thighs and pulled upwards until it seated

against her crotch.

Nolan looked up at the sight of his hand upon the hot very wet white

panties.

"This is what the sight of your cock does to me dear!" She ground her

pelvis into his hand. Even through the panties his hand was already

soaked.

She pushed his hand away and her son watched as she quickly pushed her

panties to her ankles. "Now touch me my love. See exactly what you

do to me!"

When Nolan returned his hand to her crotch he felt the incredible body

of a woman. His excited and sexy mother actually. "Oh my god!"

At his exclamation, she closed her eyes and let her head fall back as

her son explored about her crotch.

Nolan was staring at the hairless mound of his own mother, and she was

devouring his attentions. Accidentally a finger slipped between the

sloppy wet lips of her sex and she groaned out, "Yes Nolan, yes!"

Instead of pulling it out he pushed it in further and added another

finger.

"Fuck me darling, fuck my cunt!" She practically screamed out between

heavy pants.

Nolan stole a look up at her face and saw that her eyes were closed

tight and her head lolling about on her shoulders. He finally let go

of the blanket between his legs and reached up to her still covered

breast to squeeze it tightly.

"Fuck my cunt, pinch my nipples... oh my god!" With trembling hands

she reached behind herself and unbuckled the brassiere and let it fall

between them.

Nolan stared at the first naked woman of his life, other than the very

erotic white stockings she still wore. It was also the most important

woman in his life, his very own mother, the woman who had given birth

to him.

It was perhaps a strange time to think of such things, but Nolan was

reminded at the actions he was currently doing to her body was called

incest. It was illegal and possibly immoral. It was also the most

erotic thing in his young life.

With each slow lunge of his fingers she threw her head about. With

each squeeze upon her soft white breast she mewed. She desired him,

wanted him to touch her, finger her. Possibly even fuck her.

He knew this wasn't the mother he had grown up with. The woman whom

had breast fed him, changed his diaper, walked him to his first day at

school or who had clapped frantically at his first music concert with

other gifted students. No, it was a woman whom had been perverted

with the 'Toilet Water', a drug that was swimming in her system that

caused her to do things she normally would not do.

Yet, contrary to all these things, it was a mother that he had not

seriously considered. A woman, a sexual toy, for his pleasure.

Something normally incomprehensible was made possible by this

addictive drug. She was a woman that now excited him stronger than

anything else in his young life.

With his sexual energy driving his passions and perverting his mind

and heart, Nolan knew he wanted his own mother as a slave. A sex

slave! It had been planned this way, by Virginia the head of the

Sisterhood, yet he didn't feel anger or resentment. Only hot red
passion to see this sexy mature woman, and perhaps others latter,

enjoy giving him pleasure.

"I..."

She pulled her head back from her neck and opened her wide-looking

eyes to stare into her son's, "Yes baby, anything?"

Nolan pulled his fingers and hands from her body and looked right into

her eyes, "I want you mom."

She smiled hugely, gently pushed her son down upon his back on the bed

while whispering, "God yes!"

There was no patience or seductiveness now. The woman formally known

as his mother quickly climbed up above him, grabbed his teenage cock

and stabbed herself in the cunt with it.

For the first time of his life, Nolan was inside a woman. He was no

longer a virgin.

His mother placed both her hands next to her son's head and began to

moved rapidly up and down. Her body engulfing his hard member, again

and again. Her wetness coating his crotch and even the bed beneath

him. The coupling loud with her juiciness. Her breather labored and

fast. Even the smell of her body both familiar and new, all seemed to

add to the rhythm of this first time.

Nolan just watched and experienced.

It was the best day of his young life.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LV (Part 4)

Nolan was eating an nectarine as his mother ate his cock. They both

made a lot of noise and slurped at the abundant juices.

It had only been a few minutes ago when Nolan had lost his virginity

to his mother. A minute later he had begun his orgasm deep within the

woman who had given birth to him, her own immediately following. It

was the most powerful of his sexual life, the first with a woman.

Seconds had past and they had lain panting with each other, her body

sticky with sweat and stuck to his own. He loved it. He loved her.

He lusted for more.

Nolan's penis only went half hard and his mother looked up into her

son's eyes and saw that he still desired her. It was her only charge

in her life, to pleasure her son and she took much enjoyment that he

found her sexy enough to still desire her. Her only other male lover,

her husband, so far away and now forgotten, never desired her after he

finished. It always had signaled the end of the coupling. Of course

the Sisterhood had prepared her, told her what to do, to give up her

modesty and her inhibitions so that she now lived in a world of

pleasure. It mattered none that it took the 'Water' to help that

process along. She was her son's property now and she lived for his

pleasure.

Gently she slid her sweaty body off him and crawled down. She needed

to see it, feel it, smell it and especially taste it. It was a new

experience, using her mouth, that the Sisterhood had taught her. It

stood slimy and pink a right angle to him, and it was the most

beautiful thing she had ever seen in the world. Nothing would stop

her, could stop her desire as she moved her face forwards and began to

lick the length of it.

The taste of the both of them excited her even more but she tried to

ignore it until he made a motion that he wanted her. So she closed

her eyes and made love with her mouth to her son's cock.

Nolan watched for several minutes then reached for a piece of fruit by

the bed to eat. It would be this way for as long as he helped the

Sisterhood, gave them what they wanted.

Or would it?

A woman, especially his own mother, pleasuring him with her mouth.

Even the stories in the adult magazines were never so graphic, so

visual to even hint at the pleasure of this moment. It was the

perfect day; the perfect room, the sexy woman, the woman of

unmentionable fantasies begging for him.

Nolan felt her sex press against the top of his foot and felt her

grind against him. She still wanted him! Even without the 'Toilet

Water' she desired her own son, her offspring, even to the point of

sucking his cock and humping his leg.

This was the life that Virginia had lived, had promised him. It was

his heaven.

"Come up here mom." She opened her eyes and rushed to comply. A

smile upon her lips the whole time.

She lay next to her son and watched as he held the fruit an inch above

her nipples until a thick cold drop fell upon her. It caused an

electric reaction to run through her body and another when Nolan

leaned over and licked her nipple clean. He moved the juicy fruit to

her other nipple and repeated the performance. "Oh god!"

Then he placed it above his semi-erect penis and allowed a drip to

land upon the head of his cock. Her son instructed, "Your turn." She

scrambled about until she was inverted to him and licked him firmly

and slowly just as he had done to her nipples.

"Mom?"

She looked down between them at her son and saw his furled brow. "Yes

my love?"

"What exactly did the Sisterhood do to you to get you to...?" He was

staring embarrassed at his fruit.

She knew what he was asking, "To turn me into your lover?" He nodded

affirmative.

"Yes. I'd like to know please." She again turned about on the bed

and pressed her body against his.

"Anything Nolan, anything you want."



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LVI (Part 4)

She placed her head upon his chest and allowed her hand to gently

grasp his penis and stroke it softly. "It started only a few months

ago. A woman my own age came to my door unexpectedly. As we talked I

suddenly felt very aroused to the point that I felt as if I would rape

the unknown woman before me. I had never even considered another

woman as a lover, nor had a thought about cheating on your father."

Nolan shifted nervously, she had just cheated on his father, with him.

"This woman simply stepped forwards and suddenly kissed me. I flung

my arms around her as she pushed be back into my own house where we

fell upon the floor in the foyer and she licked me to oblivion." She

giggled gently, "The door was even left open but I never even

noticed." His mom licked her palm and returned it to his cock and

began to stroke him with more earnest energy. "Its hard to explain.

I never felt so excited so out of control so wanton, so sexy. This

woman felt it also, I found out later, and I returned the pleasure she

had given me."

"It was hours that I had sex with that woman and I awoke alone and

naked in the living room. The smell of female pussy", Nolan could

smell hers right now actually, "was strong and I knew it wasn't all a

dream." His mom tried to move her head down to his cock but he wanted

to hear this story and held her head against his chest.

"Keep going mom."

"The next day another woman came to my door and within a few minutes I

was kneeling between her legs and licking like some dyke maniac. It

seemed impossible to me latter as I remembered it all. The next day a

young teenager had come to my door, April I later learned, and I was

again given to my passions. This continued for nearly a month until I

was looking forwards to the ring of my doorbell and an unknown woman

waiting outside. Then none showed up for nearly a week and I was

going crazy. I must have fucked your father four times that last

weekend but never enjoyed a second of it. It was the last time I let

him touch me." She sounded embarrassed, nearly as much as Nolan was

to listen.

"Then a very old woman showed up at my door and not caring about her

age was expecting to succumb to my passion. Instead she came to talk.

I don't remember too much but she explained that I was addicted to a

drug and that they wanted me to help seduce you. I through a fit and

screamed for the bitch to leave... then she crushed a vial and I was

between her old legs licking like a mad woman."

"As it had been early in the day I soon found myself the center of a

multitude of naked females. Our living room had turned into a lesbian
orgy without me even noticing. I was passed around by many of the

ladies that had come to my door in the weeks previous. I only

remember endless pussy and numerous orgasms."

"Alone and very tired I lay in a puddle of my own spend with my body

covered with uncountable other ladies juices. I knew then that I

needed this; I don't mean the drug or the pussy, but I need this

pleasure in my life. That was when I knew I would help them seduce

you. I would later learn they also expected me to be your slave."

"And?" Nolan was stroking the upper side of her breast as his cock

thrust firmly towards the ceiling.

She was silent for a time then continued. "It was then that I began

to train. I was to show up at a house not far from our own where I

would be told to do things... all things. All holes were used and I

learned to enjoy any sexual attention at these places. I was bound

and gagged and trained to enjoy being spanked and hurt. I was

humiliated and treated like a dog to the point that I would get wet

just by the feeling of a collar about my neck."

"So many woman with fake cocks used me that I could not remember even

a dozen of their names. I loved every second. I was given endless

amounts of 'Water' when I was good and when I was bad I had to beg

even to be allowed to touch my own body. Then, when I was nearly a

machine or toy for anyone or thing that wanted me, they started to

condition me for you."

"Me?"

"Yes darling, you." She gulped and continued, "They told me they used

to do this, a man named Tony had developed the technique, to train a

woman to be the total slut and then to condition her to be a slut only

for one person. It was how the Family, what the Sisterhood used to be

called, used to make their money; selling conditioned women to wealthy

men. It always worked, and it worked in me too. I was a slave to

only one man, you Nolan."

"Wow. When did you know all this? That you were to be for me?"

"Nearly from the beginning but never knew when until Virginia invited

us to this island."

The silence was thick until Nolan ended it, "I'm glad it worked out

this way mom." He was able to reach far enough to gently pinch a

nipple.

She squealed and jerked against him, her sloppy wet sex grinding the

hair near his head. "Oh honey, I'm so glad too!"



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LVII (Part 4)

Nolan set down his fork and waited for Virginia to finish her dessert.

His mother had opted to eat nothing and sat in silence.

The three of them shared an intimate, but delicious, meal by the

fireplace the very night of the loss of Nolan's virginity. Virginia

sat upon a wide soft chair, just like his own, across from him. While

his mother knelt at her son's feet, her head upon one knee.

His initial questions had been deflected by the older woman, till

after the meal was finished. It was uncivilized she had said.

With the dessert complete, Virginia set aside her plate and fork,

smiling with pleasure of the exquisite meal. "Now young Nolan, I

believe you are very anxious to learn more?" She didn't even allow

any time for him to say anything. "There is not much to tell; but I

suppose you should know that I am to be away for a short while,

'Family Business'."

"How long will you be gone Virginia?"

"At least a week, possibly more. I'm going to leave you in charge of

the Isle during that time."

Nolan couldn't hide his surprise, "What? I don't know the first

thing...!"

"Hush young man." She was smiling even though her words chastised the

teenager. "Never been given a bit of responsibility have you?"

Virginia glared at his mom for a brief second. "Mary and the other

senior ladies will attend to the day to day workings of the Isle. Its

nearly self-sufficient anyways."

Virginia took a sip of wine and smiled at the young man. "Nothing to

worry about Nolan, I think you may enjoy yourself."

Nolan realized she was talking about the scantily clad middle-aged

woman at his feet, his own mother, and blushed furiously. His mother
had only worn a loose summer dress than came to mid-thigh and showed

off ample cleavage. All that looked upon her would have known she was

naked beneath. His mom had asked him what he thought of the dress,

when she initially modeled it for him an hour before, and with his

positive reaction insisted she wear it for him. He wished she hadn't,

if for no other reason than it was distracting.

He had to change the subject and asked, "You picked me because I'm

male and have a high IQ?"

"An exceptional IQ, yes."

"In bio-chemistry?"

"Correct." Virginia smiled softly, she enjoyed watching the young man
voice his thoughts in the form of questions.

"I can guess why you wanted a male; because I can not be seduced by

'Toilet Water' right?"

"Again correct Nolan."

"But why a teenager?"

"A teenager with a very attractive mother." She paused dramatically

and looked down at the sexy exposed limbs of the middle-aged woman

kneeling at Nolan's feet.

"But why?"

A big sigh, "Some men have certain appetites."

Again a wide blush, "How did you know I would find my mother
attractive?"

Virginia laughed lightly, "Because your a man Nolan. Besides, she is

very pretty, with her naked and begging for you, how could you not

find her attractive."

She was right, that was just how it happened. His mother had seduced

him into the ways of incest and eroticism.

"Okay, so that explains why you wanted a man, but 'bio-chemistry'?"

Virginia set down her wine goblet and looked suddenly very serious, "I

want you to find an antidote for 'Toilet Water'."

The answer was simple but it stunned him. After the day he had just

experienced, all resulting from 'Toilet Water', he was hard pressed to

understand a reason to reverse the addictive scent. Without it, he

would not have spent the afternoon in bed with his own mother.

Virginia watched him very closely.

"You are leaving me in charge of this island and its inhabitants...?"

"Correct."

"... and you want me to find a cure to the addiction of 'Toilet

Water'?"

"Easy right?"

"What about if I don't want to find a cure?"

Virginia sighed heavily and shrugged, "Then our lives go on as they

have been for many many years."

Nolan couldn't help but look down at his own mother and suddenly could

not imagine giving up the pleasure that she had introduced him too.

Virginia understood, "A cure does not mean it needs to be used on

everyone that is addicted."

If he had created a cure how could he not help his own mother, Nolan

thought to himself?

She continued, "In fact I doubt one in ten ladies here on the Isle

would want to be cured."

That surprised him, "Your kidding?"

"Ask her?" She nodded at his kneeling mother.

"Mom?" She lifted her pretty face from his lap and smiled up at her

son. "Do you like your life now or would you like to go back to the

way it was before 'Toilet Water'?"

The middle-aged woman thought for a brief second before answering, "I

love my new life. I feel more like a woman than I ever did before I

joined the Sisterhood."

"Even though it was against your will?"

She shrugged and one sexy shoulder was suddenly exposed when her

neckline slid down to her elbow. "I really don't care how I came to

be your slave or a member of this island, only that I am here now. I

actually thank Virginia and all the other girls that trained me. I

love my new life and duties."

Nolan knew what those duties were, and contrary to the serious

conversation him and Virginia were partaking in, the sight of his

mothers newly exposed smooth shoulder and upper swell of her breast
caused his cock to grow.

"If I told you that you did not have to be addicted to 'Toilet Water'

any more, what would you say?"

His mom shrugged and frowned, "I love how much pleasure I get when I

do smell it, but if I could keep my current life without it I think I

would." She didn't sound too certain.

If Nolan had heard right his mother had just admitted that she would

give up the 'Toilet Water' but she did not want to give up her

submissive new position to her very own son.

Virginia finally interrupted, "Well?"

Nolan still was not convinced, "What happens if I do make the cure?"

The ancient woman stared hard at the young man and spoke firmly,

"Then, for the first time since I was a teenager I could live without

the constant urge for it!"



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LVIII (Part 4)

That very night, the island was long since silent, Nolan lay in bed

looking out the window at the bright blue-gray moon. His mother,

naked as he was, lay cuddled in his arms, she had fallen asleep after

their love-play was over.

Upon returning from supper, where Virginia had said her last goodbyes,

his mother had asked her son if they she could have some 'Toilet

Water' when they returned to his house. After a few questions from

him, Nolan realized she was feeling withdrawal and needed her

addictive fix from the drug. It was her suggestion that they include

it with their love-play.

Nolan has smelt the scent for the first time, noting its retch and

offensive oder. His mother, on the other hand, never smelt anything

so heavenly, and said so. Before his very eyes he watched the woman

of his whole life dissolve into a mass of lust and pure uninhibited

desire. It was a different woman whom had lain with him that very

afternoon, this one was panting with need. A need that could not be

found and though she screamed with pleasure each time her son invaded

her body with his cock it was never enough. She needed more. Until

finally the evening breeze had dissolved all traces of the scent and

the bed post could no longer be humped by the middle-aged woman, that

she crawled up into her son's arms and fell into a deep exhausted

sleep.

So that was 'Toilet Water' thought the brilliant young man. There was

little doubt that nothing would have been forbidden him if he only

requested it. In fact she had begged for him to fuck her harder, to

shove his cock into her asshole, to spank her, to pull her hair and

even to come over her tits. He hadn't, though it had sounded like

delicious ideas, it was startling to see her like that.

As he lay awake, he wondered back to a time when that young man in the

picture had discovered 'Toilet Water' and had used it for the first

time. Had he watched surprised as the woman became a mass of pleasure

and lust or had he put a bridle upon her and trained her as a cowboy
would with a wild horse.

Nolan, for one, wasn't sure how he would "bridle" his mother when she

was under the drug. Yet, the thought did have some interesting

positive imagery to it, thought the young man.

He slipped out of bed and walked naked to the wide living room and

stood before the wide windows.

"Excuse me Nolan-san?"

Nolan nearly jumped in surprise, he had thought his mother and him

alone in the house. "Oh god, April, you scared me!"

She bowed smoothly, "My apologies Nolan-san. Do you need me for

anything?"

His surprise had initially turned to embarrassment at his own nudity

and then to the remembrances of his mothers uninhibited noises

earlier. Then he noticed the tiny framed young asian woman, her

pretty face and wide eyes waiting for his answer.

Looking out the window, Nolan asked, "April, you have had sex with my

mother didn't you?"

She didn't even hesitate, "Yes Nolan-san." Nolan was learning that

anything of a sexual nature and of nudity was natural on this island.

All the inhabitants were addicted to the same drug evidently, why

would they need to be embarrassed when most of them had probably lain

with most of the other inhabitants. "It was part of her training."

The image of his sexy mother with this tiny boyish-framed woman

excited him. In his magazines, lesbianism had always excited him.

"Have you had sex with many ladies April?"

"Yes Nolan-san." He stole a look at her face and realized she was

being partient with him, since she did not understand why he asked

these questions.

"How did my mother fair?"

April shrugged, "She was always eager to learn but the scent inhibited

any technique she may have used." He thought he understood,

especially after watching his mother under the influence only a few

hours before, patience and empathy were forgotten when the 'Water' was

in the air. He was glad his first time was without the smell to

inhibit her actions.

As he watched a small cloud slowly pass the glow of the moon he felt

the small cool hands encircle his waist. Lips kissed at his shoulder

while one hand gently fondled his penis. "Is there anything else

Nolan-san?"

He realized, with pleasure, that she had shrugged off her night coat

and was pressing her tiny naked body against his own.

Within her arms he spun about, finding pleasure in a woman smaller

than himself. April stood upon her toes and brought her lips to his

and he could feel the coarse pubic hair between her legs tickle his

soft penis.

"Oh Nolan-san!"

His hands sought out her body and one grasped a tiny hard buttock

while the other slide between the two naked bodies and between her

firm small thighs. She sighed into her mouth as he sucked upon her

tongue and slid a finger into her sex. It abruptly stopped an inch

within and Nolan was startled to discover this slave was a virgin.

Nolan pulled his face back to look into her eyes, "Yes Nolan-san, I

have not been with a man before only other women."

"Are you sure you want...?"

"Oh please Nolan-sama, more than life!" April suddenly slide down his

body her lips coming within an inch of his still-soft member. "I have

thought of nothing else since your arrival, I want you so!"

The tiny polite mouth began to suck upon his penis, which was rapidly

growing. Even after the last sexually active day that he had just

experienced and the last place his penis had been, within his own

mothers cunt, his cock grew rapidly, hungry for this pretty damsel.

She only sucked him till he was fully hard, her technique not as

experienced as his own mothers Nolan thought with a chuckle, before

climbing back up his body. April seemed desperate to get him inside

her, to lose her virginity and her trembling limbs and panting mouth

reminded him of his mother under the influence of the 'Toilet Water'.

But that is where the similarity ended.

The young woman knew what she wanted evidently, and simply stood still

as the tiny asian practically climbed upon his body. Nolan knew not

how she had accomplished it with toppling the both of them, but he was

pleased to find that he stood with the sexy young woman wrapped about

him, their sexes joined.

April fiercely grasped him, possibly afraid to fall and desperate not

to loose the first taste of cock within her vagina. Nolan held her

tiny hard buttocks, holding much of her weight in his strong teenage

hands.

Her sex was tight, much tighter than his only other conquest. It was

also hot, like a furnace.

Even when he moved an inch April would grasp him firmly and whimper

into his chest.

"Did it hurt?"

"Oh yes Nolan-sama! It hurt so good." She was whispering so that he

could barely hear her.

Then she began to move, her whole torso moving up and down, so that

her sex nearly expelled the intruder before again plunging down. This

time Nolan let out a moan of delight.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LIX (Part 4)

Nolan turned bright red when he opened his eyes and found his

nearly-naked mother standing over him and April. His mother only wore

a white bed sheet and had a wild tired look about her, a look he would

come to learn as a newly-fucked look. Turning to the still sleeping

April, he saw that she looked similar, beautiful.

"Mom?"

"Nolan", she whispered, not wanting to wake the younger girl, "Mary is

waiting for you in the foyer."

"Mom I'm sorry!" He nodded to the sleeping Asian.

His mother frowned for a second and then brightened up, amused even.

"Oh Nolan darling. I care not if you have other lovers, I expect and

will help you actually, only hope that you visit your mother as

frequently as you may." Nolan noticed that his mothers nipples stood

hard against the soiled white sheet and wondered if her conditioning

had also entranced this into her mind.

Mary was seated wearing her normal soft smile as she looked out at the

new morning sun. "Morning Mary?" Nolan had adorned a tee-shirt and

jeans before appearing in his foyer.

"Oh Nolan, a pleasure!" Mary stood rapidly and smiled hugely at the

young man. "I am sorry to come so early, but we have a small dilemma

that should be attended too."

It was like a rock hit him in the chest, Mary was here because he had

been left in charge of the island by Virginia. Now the authority

granted by the older matron needed to be exercised - Nolan wasn't so

certain that he was qualified.

"It is Tony." She made a sour face, comically. "Again."

"Tony?" He remembered his mother mentioning that name, something

about training a woman to be totally submissive.

She frowned, a little surprised. "Tony's mom was one of David's

slaves and when he discovered the benefits of 'Toilet Water' and being

a man...!" Mary frowned, much to Nolan's discomfort. She was

talking, with candor and a little smile, about a woman and her son

having sex. "When David became sick, Tony and Virginia ran the family
for several years."

"Is he not part of the family any longer? I thought I am the only

guy?"

"Oh most certainly," she winked at him playfully, "you are the only

male here on the island. No, Tony lives on an estate Virginia granted

him many years ago."

"What is his duties within the Family?" Nolan also wanted to ask if

there was any other men, but didn't , at least not yet.

"None. He is simply to keep out of trouble."

"Then what has he done?"

"He sent an ultimatum to Virginia; that she grant him audience or he

will go public about 'Toilet Water'." Mary looked disgusted. "We

received it just this morning, so I came to you." Since Virginia

wasn't available and he was in charge, she didn't add.

"Is he dangerous?"

"Tony? Only when he has power." Like I now do, thought the young
man.

"Grant him his audience then, but don't tell him Virginia isn't

available."

Mary nodded, her smile gone and she didn't look pleased with his

directive. "He will be here tonight then." She turned and exited his

house.

It was evident to Nolan, that Mary didn't care to see this man Tony.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LX (Part 4)

That morning, Nolan had three senior women come to his home to ask his

direction on various matters. One so he could give his approval on a

marriage between two local ladies, an act that surprised the teenager.

Another to agree on a punishment for a woman whom had stolen another

of her Sisterhood's Water, nothing harsh. The third to go over the

budget for that month, most of which Nolan didn't understand.

Lunch was a quiet affair, Nolan and his mother, with April serving.

April had this constant smile and catered upon Nolan's every wish

expectantly. His mom, on the other hand, was listening patiently to

her son discuss the discoveries of his morning, particularly of the

lesbian marriage.

Nolan was explaining how some of the islands money was being spent

when he felt a foot slip gently against the inside of his thigh. He

shut his mouth and looked surprised at his mother, across the table

from him. The foot moved higher until he felt the toes wiggling about

the bulge of his jeans.

"Mom?" She was smiling deviously and he saw that her nipples were

beacons of her excitement. His cock was slowly raising to the

fumbling attentions of the toes.

"Yes honey?"

April came in and refilled Nolan's glass of milk and his moms water

goblet. Nolan looked embarrassed at the younger woman waiting for her

to leave before answering.

When April disappeared into the kitchen, his mom asked, "Why were you

embarrassed darling?" The toes were actually stroking his cock with

great expertise, considering. "After this morning, I would think you

may like her to join in?"

Wow, thought the teenager, did he just hear his mother right? "Join

in?"

"I love you honey."

"I love you too mom."

"And I want to make you happy." She smiled gently even while her toes

were moving up and down the length of his cock beneath his jeans.

"Haven't you even thought about what it must have been like when April

and I had sex?" He nodded affirmatively, ever since he had heard the

tale he had thought of the image. "Wouldn't you like to see us do

that again... and join in when you felt like it?"

His mouth was suddenly dry.

April came back in with a dry of various desserts, she paused at a

look from Nolan's mom. "April darling, my son would like you and I to

put a show on for him?"

"Truly Nolan-san?"

"How about we meet you in the front room honey." The foot disengaged

and his mom stood up with a smile towards April. "Don't be too long

Nolan."

April ran through the arch way towards the front room, excitement

evident by her anxious excited movements. His mom followed much

slower, with a slow roll of her buttocks that could not be ignored.

Nolan gulped down his glass of milk and took a deep breath. These

last few days had been amazing to the teenager.

He stood and followed within a few long moments.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXI (Part 4)

The two ladies were kissing and grappling aggressively, his mother
often looking past her lesbian lover to ensure her only son enjoyed

the show, while April had her eyes closed and was enjoying every

second.

Nolan sat in a large easy chair and imagined himself as a Roman

emperor watching two slaves enjoy each other. As an emperor he could

do anything to these two ladies, he could even have more attend to him

as he watched this show. He suddenly thought of Rachel and thought

about what she must look like naked, what her lips would feel about

the shaft of his cock, her tongue dancing with the head of his penis.

As he understood it, if toilet water had been in the air these two

ladies would not be patient so willing to simply enjoy the others

tongue. Rather, they would be attempting to get head-first into the

others vagina, to slip their fingers tongue and even toys in the

others asshole or cunt.

Nolan enjoyed how the scent reacted with his mom but he also enjoyed

how she was without its mind numbing scent. Could he create an

antidote or at least make the scent non-addictive - that was another

solution that he had come up with himself, one that Virginia had not

spoken to him about.

Oh certainly a woman, his mother for instance, would and could be

mentally addicted to the smell and the pleasures they felt during drug

induced orgies. Yet their bodies did not crave it, they need not be

coherced into acts that they thought despicable.

Did his mother think fucking him was despicable, thought Nolan

suddenly?

Both ladies had not worn much in the way of clothing, neither had worn

undergarments - so it was only a minute that they lay intertwined and

naked, humping the other rhythmically.

The teenager watched fascinated at the two different bodies couple,

his mothers larger whiter softer body very sexy and April's thin

almost boyish body. He unzipped his jeans and allowed his cock to

stand up straight and free.

They ground and jerked upon the floor, his mother's hairless crack

grinding into the other short black pussy. The evidence of their

pleasure obvious with the amount of clear shiny liquid coating both

bodies.

It had not been long when both ladies started the final assent to

nirvana. His mother watching his hard cock without blinking, April

hiding her face between his mothers bountiful breasts. They both let

out a feminine scream, clenched and then finally relaxed panting.

His mom was the quicker to recover, "Well darling?" Nolan only smiled

at his mom. "I can see you enjoyed the show - could we help you with

that?" She nodded at his stiff hard teenage cock.

April looked up at what the older lady was looking at and then began

to crawl out from her tanglement, Nolan's mom not far behind. Two

sexy naked sweaty bodies crawled to him opening their mouths as they

approached.

It was an incredible sight, and Nolan removed his hand as the two lips

seemed to engulfed his sex. His mother swallowed his prick to the

root while April took one ball deep into her mouth - both sucked
instantly.

The teenager was startled to see Rachel walk into the room and

silently seat herself near the doorway. Nolan thought of his earlier

images and felt a sudden embarrassment but that quickly vanished when

he realized that the twenty-something year old was watching him get a

blow job by his own mother.

Yet, Rachel seemed patient enough to wait for the only man on the

islands pleasure to end. And as the seconds ticked past, one of her

own hands slipped into her khaki jeans, between her thighs and Nolan

watched amazed knowing that the woman was masturbating to the show she

was watching.

The familiar feeling in his balls startled him, so that he again

looked down to see that it was April's mouth that was sucking his

shaft. He allowed the sperm to release, not even stopping to warn the

tiny teenage lover, the spurts of life giving juices filling the tiny

mouth.

It was over rather quickly, and without much ceremony, it had been

only a simple blowjob. Nolan's mother released his balls and pulled

April's mouth from him, her lips again locked with the teenage

lesbians. They shared his orgasm as Nolan watched Rachel have a small

self induced orgasm across the room.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXII (Part 4)

Tony looked dangerous thought the teenager, as they shook hands down

by the docks. Most of the islands inhabitants were not to be seen, as

if the island was closed up prepared for a storm. Perhaps it was

thought Nolan.

Mary suggested he was not allowed any further on the island, it seemed

most of the ladies seemed to think unkindly of the elderly man. She

and Rachel were the only two females in attendance, not counting the

float planes crew.

"So your the new boy toy huh? Have you fucked your mother yet?"

The second question startled the teenager and he felt the blood fill

his cheeks.

Tony only laughed knowingly, "I taught Virginia every nasty thing she

knows. Have you fucked mommy up the ass yet - it was one pleasure

zone that was focused on in all ladies I trained?"

"What is it you want Tony?" His voice sounded raspy even to himself.

He didn't change the subject, "Those ladies with virgin assholes

trained the best." He looked up at the sky as if gauging if it will

rain or not. "If I know our Virginia, she made sure your mommy had a

virgin asshole before training her."

"Leave my mother out of this!"

Tony chuckled, "Of course... Nolan."

Mary shuffled on her feet and Tony turned his attention to her, "Ah

Mary - you fat slut, how are you doing? Want to come and give me a

kiss for old times sake?"

She didn't say a word but hung her head and started to move towards

Tony, this only frustrated Nolan and he moved between the two,

stopping the older ladies movement. "What is it you want?"

"And that peach", he nodded towards Rachel, "I hope you poked that

slut as there are not many fuckable sluts left on this island?"

Nolan only glared at him and he was surprised to see Rachel turn red
and turn away to look at the far away beach.

"No? Then mind if I have a tumble with her?" He chuckled

maliciously.

There was silence for a couple of minutes as the two men glared at

each other.

"The family has a new head-cock huh?" He stepped back and sat down

upon one of the wide logs about the gravel path. Tony was getting

old, and he looked it. When Nolan didn't reply, Tony sighed and

finally asked, "I want back in." It wasn't a question.

Then he commented, "Do you know where Virginia is?"

Nolan stole a look over his shoulder at Mary but she was staring at

her feet.

"No? Well let me just tell you something Nolan - I was one of the

founding members of this Family. Have they told you that?" No

answer. "And it was me that helped put us here today!" The old man
was nearly screaming. "Tell that old cunt that I'm going public if I

don't get the reigns of power once again." He started to laugh and

commented, "What have I got to loose? I have only a couple of years

left to live and I want to enslave as many sluts as I can in that time

and to fuck each and every one of them!" He was shouting again.

Nolan began to believe Tony was insane, but dangerous. Watching

Rachel and Mary, it had to be true he knew.

"I'll make you a deal young man, we shall out that old slut Virginia

and share the top seat together huh? Again make the family into

something of power." Even in Tony's ranting he noticed his argument

was not having any effect on the teenager. "Think of any slut, why

not every one that you jerked off too - your teacher, some slut on the

television, your aunt or sister, maybe just some old cow next door who

used to tease you - wouldn't you like to fuck each and every one of

those?"

Tony saw Nolan's eyes loose some of their defiance and he knew this

was his opportunity. "Do you have a sister Nolan?" Tony's voice had

lost most of its venom and was simply asking politely.

"No."

"A cousin?"

Nolan was not stupid enough not to see what Tony was doing, yet the

images coming to his minds eye seduced him. He whispered, "Yes."

"She is pretty isn't she?" Nolan only nodded. "Younger, older?"

"A year younger."

"I bet her breasts are just right, with long youthful legs and an ass

that only a young woman can have right?" Tony was leaning forwards,

his eyes sparkling.

Everything Tony said was true and Nolan had thought of his cousin on

more than one occasion as he fantasized, "Yes."

"She is polite to you, smiles and laughs but she is also a bitch that

barely knows your alive right?"

True, Nolan nodded.

"What is her name son?"

"Shelly."

"Hum... a very fine name. 'Slave' Shelly." Tony sat back and licked

his lips while staring up at the sky. "Now that you know some of the

power behind the 'Water' can you imagine what it would be like to have

that young beauty beg for you?" He didn't say a word so Tony

continued, "She would do anything, you realize that don't you? I mean

anything that you want - only to have another taste of the 'Toilet

Water'."

Tony changed tactics, "I'm sorry about what I said regarding your

mother Nolan - mother's are sacred aren't they?"

Nolan was trying to imagine his cousin's face approaching his spread

knees, his mother next to her, as both mouths opened to engulf his

cock. His mothers hands behind that tight teen ass and teased the

slit while both mouths pleasured him.

"David never let any man touch his mother."

"David's mother?"

"Oh yes - that is where it all started. Didn't Virginia tell you?"

Nolan didn't say anything but he had lost the image in his mind. "It

was how David had me join, by giving me possession of my mother. She

was a slut."

David nodded agreeing before he realized what he was doing, it was not

his mothers fault that she was addicted to the 'Water' or that she had

been conditioned as a pleasure slave for her only son. Then he

remembered her face as she orgasmed beneath him or as she shared his

spunk with April - she loved her new position as ... 'slut'!

"Virginia came a little latter, after David made his sister and mother
slaves. And you know what that is like don't you son?"

This time Nolan met Tony's eyes, the first time since they had shook

hands.

"I'll tell you what... let me stay here with you on the island at

least till Virginia returns?" Tony added almost as an afterthought,

"I'll be good."

Mary was grasping her hands frantically hoping that Nolan would see

her even as the young man nodded positively.

"Good lad. I think you'll really enjoy some of the stories I've got

to tell you." Nolan actually smiled with Tony.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXIII (Part 4)

Virginia returned to the island and felt it immediately, knew

something was wrong. Mary told her everything at the dock and didn't

stop talking even as they took the Hummer up the mountain.

The angry older woman stormed through her home till she entered the

large lounge that had often been a scene of orgies. That was what it

was currently being used for.

Virginia stood in the doorway so angry that she could barely talk and

looked down at the scene before her. Tony was seated in a chair, his

naked old body disgusting to her, though Rachel didn't seem to mind as

she knelt naked between his knees sucking on his old knob. Behind her

April pumped a fake phallus, attached by a belt to her hips, into the

sexy woman's cunt. Behind her Nolan's mother, also with a strap on

cock, fucked April. And behind her, Nolan fucked his mother. Tony

was smoking a cigar, a habit he took to hide the scent of the 'Water'

from his nostrils, and telling the story about how they had purchased

an American Senator's wife. Nolan was smiling as he pumped into his

mother, finding the story very humorous.

Virginia noticed other ladies within the room, at least a dozen more.

Ten of which she noticed as the most comely women of the island, none

below the age of forty. There was two other ladies, one a young
teenager that four of the ladies were ganging up with and the other

looked in her middle thirties, who had the remainder of the lesbians
for her pleasure.

The 'Toilet Water' was thick in the air.

Virginia closed the door and felt her hands trembling, she wanted to

enter and join, to take a deep breath of the scent and fall to the

floor to wrap her body in female flesh. The sight of Nolan's young
cock, as it pistoned in and out of his mother, brought another urge to

the old woman.

She stumbled through the huge house till she collapsed upon the floor

before her private room. Virginia tried to yell out but the trembling

in her limbs had turned to incredible pain in her chest.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXIV (Part 4)

Nolan watched as two of the islands medical staff, yes the island its

own small hospital, complete with nurses and a doctor, carefully took

Virginia out of the house. The islands matriarch had a massive heart

attack and only the quick actions of her loving Mary had saved her

life, though the doctor had said the older woman may never fully

recover.

Tony was still in the lounge, popping pills to help him keep his hard

on as he enjoyed Rachel for the countless time in the last ten days.

Nolan's mother stood behind him, her hand upon his shoulder as they

rolled the delicate old woman from the house. He was feeling

extremely guilty, while he pleasured himself Virginia had lain out

here on the cold marble alone.

Then they were gone and Nolan was left with only his mother and the

sounds of the islands forests.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXV (Part 4)

Nolan retired back to the small house he had first inhabited when he

came to the island, the same room that his mother and he had first

lain.

Nolan's mother attended to him, every one else was ordered to leave

them alone and not to disturb him. For days his mother cooked and

cleaned the house for her son, and each night she lay alone as her son

did not request her presence. She offered herself, always and several

times each day, but nothing she could do would seduce her son to have

her return to his bed. She felt old and useless, her son was in pain

and she could not do anything to help. He had also ordered her not to

talk unless spoken too, so she walked about the house in silence and

near-tears.

For the first week Nolan stared out of a bay window to the forest and

ocean beyond, speaking to no one and asking for nothing. His mother
simply brought food, left it on the table next to him and then left.

She would return later to find him seated exactly the same position

but with the plate empty.

Each day he sent his mother to the hospital and each day she returned

to say that Virginia was still on life-support and it was not known if

she would live.

After that first week, Nolan sent his mother to return with the papers

that Virginia had told him about. Now he spent every waking minute

reading and re-reading the formula to the Families power. He lost

himself in the pen written scratch that was half a century old, a man
that used power to fulfill his lusts.

Surprisingly Tony didn't come to the house or acknowledge even Nolan's

loss. He did go to the hospital and stood above the silent woman as

he gloated her attack and the powerless new leader, Nolan. He fucked

every woman that moved on the island, except the one sleeping in the

room next to Nolan - his mother, and the one in a coma - Virginia.

The two new ladies, both that Tony suggested he include in the Family,

Nolan's cousin Shelly and her mom, his aunt, Jennifer, anxiously

attended each orgy that Tony had, hungry for more of that new and

exciting scent.

New slaves were appearing on the island, and all the ladies now wore

collars, though solid gold, while Nolan never made notice of it and

studied. He ordered some bio-chemistry books from the mainland, as

well as some tools, his mother met the boat and returned with several

boxes that he had requested.

Things were changing, even Nolan had to notice when he looked out his

window at the clouds and ocean. There was a new wooden chair upon a

platform down near the docks, that was being used as a punishment.

Always one of the islands original inhabitants, one per day sometimes

more, were tied upon this chair. Seated thus, the woman would have a

large phallus inserted beneath the chair into her vagina another into

her anus and a mask for a third to insert into her mouth. These fake

cocks were powered by the islands generators and would move within the

woman. At first it was pleasurable and then later, remember there was

no scent in the air, it became painful and not much longer torturous.

Tony watched each punishment with a handful of his chosen harem.

More ladies came to the island, mothers with young daughters,

teenagers and co-eds. Each had to crawl from the plane or boat as a

whip-mistress, as they were now called, hit them with leather straps.

Each one that came was already addicted, each a slave.

Then came the men, mostly older expensively dressed men looking

nervous but leaving later with huge smiles. There was not many of

these, but enough.

Nolan had stopped reading David and Virginia's notes regarding the

'Water' after a month and again returned to looking out his window -

purposely ignoring all that happened on the island.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXVI (Part 4)

Nolan stood sheepishly next to the white bed, looking down at the

ancient and bedridden face of the woman that had introduced him to the

Family. The same woman that had raped his mother by forcing an

addictive substance down his throat. Also the same woman that he now

felt extreme guilt for.

"Nolan?" He tired to smile but failed.

Nolan had been told hours before that Virginia was awake and taken off

the life-support equipment, then stood here until she had acknowledged

him.

"Mary sat by my side nearly the whole time I was sick." In a coma,

but Nolan was not prepared to correct her. Mary sat on the other side

of the bed, holding her mistress's hand lovingly. Behind him, Nolan's

mother waited anxiously.Virginia looked at the soft round old face and

a smile passed between the two, a smile that only two people that had

been intimate for a very long time could share.

"She has told me about what Tony is doing, you must stop this

madness!" Virginia started to cough violently.

She misunderstood Nolan's silence, everyone but maybe his mother did,

"I'm so sorry Virginia."

The woman smiled after Mary whipped the spittle from her chin. "I was

not wrong about you - you have the heart to release my Family's soul

from our bane."

Nolan nodded negatively, "Its not about the 'Toilet Water'..."

"Its all about the 'Toilet Water'!" Snapped Virginia. She took a

deep breath and looked to Nolan's mother and Mary, "Leave us please."

They did.

"Do you think Tony's madness has nothing to do with the 'Water'?"

"I think his madness lies in the power he craves."

"True! Yet what gives him that power?" She chuckled, and Nolan felt

that she understood the weight upon his heart and soul.

"Do you know what caused my heart attack?"

Nolan nodded his face turning red, "The party Tony had thrown and

which you walked into."

"Wrong!" She smiled triumphant, "I had opened the door and saw the

orgy that Tony had always enjoyed - I had known the seduction of the

flesh for a man of your age and stamina." She again chuckled and he

turned even an darker shade of red. "No! It was my desire to join in

that caused my attack, the personal battle within me." He sat open

mouthed stunned. "I don't have the strength I used to have. The last

thought that I remember is about your cock, hard and wet from your

mothers juices. I craved it so!"

Nolan dropped back into a chair and stared in surprise at the older
woman.

"So you see young man, its all about the 'Water'. Even now my old
cunt remembers and wants that cock in me." He couldn't help it but

stole a look down at the strategic spot in the blanket.

Virginia's voice softened, "I know the urges of the flesh Nolan, lord

knows all that I have enjoyed. I would have granted you Shelly and

Jennifer without a thought, your work is much more important than two

other additions to the Sisterhood."

"Find a cure for my Sisterhood Nolan, allow us to grow past this

addictive drug created by a horny teen hungry for his mothers flesh?"

She was nearly pleading with him and Nolan realized this woman

probably never begged anything from anyone.

"And Tony?"

She shrugged, "He is nothing, simply another addict of the 'Water' but

different of course."

Virginia was looking tired, "Mary said he has not found it?"

Nolan knew immediately what she referred too. "I have them." The

papers, the formula to the 'Toilet Water'. Nolan had sent for them

within days of Virginia's heart attack, Tony's celebration orgy had

only been winding down at that point and he didn't yet think about the

formula.

She smiled, "Then you have the power over all of us Nolan. Please

send in Mary and your mother."

They returned, along with the doctor and two nurses. "Before everyone

here, I formally resign my position as the head of the Sisterhood and

give total rights to each and every one of us to Nolan. He is now the

head of our Family."

Nolan sat stunned with his mouth open. The ladies standing around the

clean white room, all but Nolan's mother now wearing the gold collar,

listened but did not believe a teen boy could best Tony.

Virginia fell immediately asleep, a smile upon her lips.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXVII (Part 4)

It was only minutes after Nolan returned to his house that he spun his

mother about and wrapped his arms about her, he kissed her with a

passion that she once gave him. Her startled impotence quickly

overcome she returned the passion of the kiss with her own. Hands

grappled and clothing tore, Nolan and his mother ripped the others

covering off.

On the floor, in the entrance to his little house, Nolan pumped his

young hard cock within his mothers sex. Both of them half wearing

some of the clothing that they had donned to the hospital. Her sex

was hot and wet, his cock hard and throbbing. It was her body that

released first, and she screamed with pleasure. His followed less

than a minute later.

Both of them lay panting, his cock still submerged, when the older
woman gently kissed her son's brow, "I'm proud of you my son."

Tears came to his eyes and Nolan whispered into his mothers bosom, "I

don't want to be the head of the family mom, I don't want to be

responsible for all these people!" She didn't say anything but

brushed his brow and kissed his head.

Silence and only the birds outside sung till Nolan asked, "How did you

fare without...?" He was asking what did she do without the scent to

quell her urges these last weeks.

"I have a small supply that I used, when you slept." He didn't say

anything so she added, "Every object resembling... ever wonder why I

had so many candles in my room?"

Nolan began to laugh and his mother kissed his brow, knowing all was

to be okay.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXVIII (Part 4)

It took exactly two hours till Tony sent Rachel and April to the house

that Nolan and his mother shared. Two hours since Virginia had

granted the head of the family to Nolan.

Rachel and April stood wearing nothing but their collars and sandals,

a chain locking the two necks two feet apart, "Master Tony demands

your immediate attendance!" Rachel had the louder voice and her

message reverberated off the walls.

Nolan and his mother started to laugh up at the naked slaves, as they

cuddled naked as well upon the futon in the room that Nolan had spent

so much time in these last weeks. Nolan laughed louder, his mothers

more reserved.

April and Rachel looked nervous and scared, it would probably be the

public chair as a punishment if they did not have Nolan return to

their master immediately.

"I acknowledge no one as 'master' Rachel." The sexy woman stood wide

eyed with surprise and unsure of what else to do.

It was April that spoke up, "Please Nolan-san, he will hurt us?"

Nolan nodded negatively, "I'm sorry April, but I am not coming to the

house till I am ready." He seemed to think a second before adding,

"Neither are you." The two slaves looked at each other with fear and

puzzlement, neither knew what to do.

His mother spoke up, "Come here girls, you must be cold?" It was a

chilly day indeed, the winter was approaching. This was something

that they were used too, direct orders. Rachel and April, bound by

the neck climbed upon the foot of the futon as Nolan and his mother
directed both mouths between their legs.

Rachel went between Nolan's legs and immediately took his soft soiled

cock into her mouth, thankful that the decision was taken away from

her.

April slipped between the soft sexy thighs of the older woman and

immediately began to lap at the familiar slit before her, as always

the youngest woman in the room loved anything sexual and immediately

forgot everything else as she licked.

Nolan reached over and squeezed his mothers breast firmly, "After I

attend to Tony I want to try something new with you mom?"

She signed and then answered her son, "Anything my love?"

"I want to fuck your asshole."

She gasped out and pressed her sex against the youthful lips, suddenly

wanting that tongue lower down, upon her anus. "God I would love that

my darling son!" She grasped the tiny face with both her hands and

guided the open mouth and dainty expert tongue to her asshole.

Nolan smiled, anxious to attend to that pleasure while also

acknowledging the truth of Tony's words.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXIX (Part 4)

He left April and Rachel to continue to pleasure his mother, even

opening up a vial of 'Water' to keep them busy for a while longer, as

he walked up the mountain. The sounds of his mothers pleasure screams

music to his ears.

Things had indeed changed, he realized, as if for the first time. It

was a different island than the one that he had first landed upon.

There was fear here now, instead of comfort and peace. Virginia was

right, it wasn't just Tony, it was the 'Water' - or rather, how it was

used.

Not all Masters were as benevolent as Virginia had been. Tony

certainly was not!

Nolan was a different man than the one that landed upon the island,

let alone the one that secluded himself in his villa while the world

around him tore itself apart. He passed much that concerned him,

things that should not be - but with Tony's demented touch had

perverted.

No woman that Nolan passed was dressed, even the old wore nothing but

foot covering and their gold collars. There were many new faces,

younger pretty faces that passed him - faces that looked upon him

strangely as if they did not know there was another male upon the

island.

Nolan ignored all these distractions and finally came to the home upon

the top of the mountain.

Without hesitation Nolan swung open the large front door and stepped

into the warm house. In the large foyer, the fountain was gone and

replaced by two lesbian slaves fornicating upon a pedestal, they were

both painted bright blue.

Shelly came at a half run into the room and stopped wide-eyed at her

cousin, "Nolan!"

He stormed past her, "Nolan, please not now he is so angry that you

did not show up latter."

Virginia had told him his desires were expected, normal, that his

introduction of Shelly and his aunt were part of the power of the

'Toilet Water'. Nolan stopped just next to her and slipped a hand

between her naked thighs cupping her hairless lolita loins. "When

this is finished you and I will have to properly enjoy ourselves?"

They had certainly fucked, numerous times, but always within the

attendance of numerous others, including Tony. Nolan wanted to enjoy

this fantasy woman alone and saw the flush to her face and instant

wetness between her legs to confirm her response.

He turned and immediately forgot her, Nolan had business with Tony.

Nolan was prepared for another orgy, they had countless while Virginia

was away, and both men had certainly enjoyed themselves. Yet he was

not ready for a different Tony, as he sat alone in the same garden

that Virginia had once greeted Nolan, trying to read between hacking

and coughing.

Tony looked his age, older perhaps.

"Tony?"

The old man looked up, smiled gently and put the book aside. "Ah,

finally. Nolan, I have been waiting for you?"

They had shared much Nolan remembered, they had fucked many the same

slave over the ten days they had spent together. If not for

Virginia's heart attack Nolan doubted he would have adverted his

hungry teen eyes from the pleasures that Tony had presented.

He was glad he had.

A personal battle had waged within him, one that Nolan had

misunderstood. It was not about lust but about power. Virginia had

told him he need never give up lust no matter what the future lay for

him and the Family.

"I heard about what Virginia had granted you?" As always the old man
rarely waited for a question to be answered before continuing, "And I

agree."

That startled Nolan and he waited to see what else the slippery old
man had to say.

"I think its time to pass the reigns of power onto you - new and fresh

blood." He smiled and Nolan felt like slapping the old man, to break

that creased smile from his lips. "I would like to be your friend and

mentor of course."

That did it, the power behind the throne Nolan thought disgusted.

"Never Tony - your out."

The old face turned nasty, his mouth widening like a snake about to

strike, "Listen you little punk...!"

"You listen! Leave by nightfall Tony."

"Or what?" His voice was crackling and loud.

"I plan on giving the antidote to each and every slave." Tony sat

wide eyed, unsuspecting that answer. "I'll collect every slave that

you punished and let them have you at sundown."

Tony didn't seem to hear the last threat only the first, the basis of

all the power he and the family enjoyed. "There is no antidote!"

Nolan laughed, "Did you not know why Virginia invited me to join her

Sisterhood - of my background in bio-chemistry? Well I found it."

The chemicals that composed the 'Toilet Water' were all common place,

though fifty years ago it would have been impossible to counter the

addictive qualities of the 'Water'. Today, the addictive component

had a counter agent for many years. If the formula for the 'Water'

had not been so secret, it would have been known by now. Nolan had

quickly discovered this and had already made a large batch of both the

counter agent in a solution and more unaddictive 'Water'.

Nolan had watched the old man's eyes, and saw that his world was

tumbling down. "You return to the home Virginia had granted you and I

do not want to hear a peep from you."

Tony suddenly knew he was lost and simply nodded.

Nolan immediately turned and left his presence.

The two men never again met.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXX (Part 5)

Rachel wadded through the crowded hallway after seeing the long hair

of her target. The young man, a teenager really, had grown taller

since she first met him, his face becoming more handsome and mature
within the last year. Of course that was irrelevant to the sexy

twenty-something, to her, he was nearly a god.

He had freed her from the black hole of her enslavement.

Classes had been let out and all the university students were anxious

to begin their weekend. So the hallway was loud with the crowd of

young people moving very quickly. Chaotic could easily describe it.

"Nolan?" Rachel was a few feet away from the head of the Family, and

saw that he was retrieving his jacket from a locker, to leave.

Not unexpectedly Nolan was a loner, even here in this crowded learning

centre. He could probably purchase the school and enslave every

female in it, but of course he did not do that. Instead he was nearly

finished his second doctorate, in Biology.

"Nolan!" He hadn't heard the first call and there was a thick crowd

of jocks between her and the family head. Rachel pressed against

them, attempting to slip between their thick bodies.

In the confusion she felt a hand grasp her buttock roughly - the

high-spirited Scottish lass spun around and glared at the owner of the

paw. "Fuck off shit-for-brains!" Rachel hated leaving the Island.

The pimply jock turned bright red while a handful of his friends that

had heard the exchange laughed maliciously. They parted for the sexy

woman. Rachel saw that Nolan was closing his locker, his jacket and

book bag in hand.

"Nolan?"

This time he heard it and spun around. Nolan's face brightened up

upon seeing Rachel. "Master!" She whispered after rushing into his

arms, her lips right below his ear. He had grown in the last year and

they were approximately the same height.

"What's up Rachel?" He was concerned, she saw it on his face as they

pulled away, they hadn't seen each other in the last several months.

It was his standing order that he only be disturbed at school for

emergencies. Rachel appearing meant there was an emergency.

"Oh master!" Her lips moved to his, and she slipped her tongue into

his mouth. The last time she had felt a man, between her legs or even

upon her lips, was the last time she had seen Nolan. In some ways,

her female lovers could not compete. And she only desired Nolan, the

only man she could even imagine being intimate with.

Certainly, after Nolan released all the enslaved woman of the

Sisterhood, some chose to leave the Island and the family and its

rules. But most did not, it was the only family they now knew - the

only one that could except from after horrors of their enslavement.

And as a family group the future seemed much rosier than it had ever

been.

Rachel, with her close relationship with Nolan, had garnered herself a

high position in the new family - Nolan preferred 'Family' to

'Sisterhood' - and thus she was tied even closer to the man who once

had enslaved her. Of course, she was no longer addicted to 'Toilet

Water' and her ties with the family and Nolan was now fully

consensual.

Nolan had to push Rachel's shoulders back to release her lips, "What's

wrong Rachel?"

She stared into his brown eyes then slipped the letter into his free

hand.

Nolan simply stared at it, "What's this?" His voice had even

deepened, thought Rachel with a definite tingling between her legs.

She looked about, the crowd still thick and previously forgotten, was

now obvious. He understood - "Come home with me." It wasn't a

question, his previous domination of every female in the family was

hard to forget, and as head of that family he had gotten used to

getting his way.

He turned about and with his arm about her curvy waist, which she very

much enjoyed, they wadded through the hallway.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXXI (Part 5)

Teri greeted Rachel with surprise and a firm warm hug. Nolan's mother
saw the green eyes of the feisty red-head turn back to her son and she

saw the desire and love within them - and she relaxed.

Ever the protective mother.

Though her son's lover, and she was no longer addicted to the 'Water',

Teri had been conditioned so thoroughly that she was still devoted to

her son's pleasure. And her motherly instinct continually wanted to

protect him, and thus her evaluation of Rachel.

Weekly a report would arrive from Jennifer, her sister upon the

Island. Teri would review and tell her son only the parts that she

deemed necessary - often he didn't even have to do any family business

for weeks at a time.

It was her duty to protect and pleasure her son, and if Nolan had to

comment, he would say she was doing a very good job.

Rachel was lead in and sat down in the warm comfortable family room of

Nolan's house. A house Nolan, his mother and April occupied. An

average but well manufactured home with all the gadgets that a teenage

boy would ever want. Nolan opened a small fridge behind the bar and

pulled out a soft drink before sitting in a wide easy chair

perpendicular to the red headed lass.

He opened the sealed envelope with two sets of eyes watching him, and

he seemed a little put off at being intruded upon. family business

ran fine, with his original mandates, without him - just as he wished.

Nolan read the three page letter twice.

April had come into the room, saw the newcomer, and smiled a warm

welcome but stayed silent and waited for Nolan to speak.

Nolan put down the pages and asked Rachel, "Do you know what is in

these?"

"Yes Master." Though he was no longer anyone's master, the ladies in

his life and most in the family chose to call him thus. He was the

head of their family as well as the one who had released them from the

mind numbing addiction of the 'Water'.

Teri had to bite her lip from asking the obvious.

He continued, "It seems some of our previous customers don't like our

new product." It was not only the slaves of the Sisterhood that had

been released but also the slaves of every man whom had purchased the

'Water' from the family to enslave their own. All had been released

per Nolan's orders. According to the customers original contracts

they had to keep getting the 'Water', the contract was just not

specific enough to which version of the 'Water'. The 'New Version'

was what Nolan had called it, which was a very potent aphrodisiac that

worked on females only but it had no addictive qualities, was now

given rather than the original formula.

Upon the Island, every inhabitant now had an unlimited supply of the

'New Water' - and though there were less inhabitants than a year

before, the consumption was actually up from a year ago. It seems the

Family's ex-slaves still enjoyed the side-affects of inhaling the

powerful odour - sex was rampant on the island, addicted or not.

Virginia had warned Nolan, had suggested he only free some of the

Sisterhood and none of their customers slaves. It was bad for

business and could only broker resentment and ill feelings. Nolan had

been unmoved and freed all.

The letter was from Virginia.

"Tell them Rachel."

She sat forwards and could feel the tears welling up in her eyes as

she paraphrased the contents of the letter. "A group of our customers

had joined forces and, initially, demanded the original 'Water' from

the family months before. Two days ago a group of an unknown size

snuck onto the Island, assaulted the Manor killing eighteen and

attempted to find the formula's. They did not succeed and the Manor

was burnt to the ground. We assume it was mercenaries hired from that

group."

It did not need to be spoken, as Nolan had the formula's well hidden
and no longer on the Island, but only the ladies, and Virginia, in

this room knew this.

April ran forwards to wrap her thin arms about her ex-lesbian-lover,

the two ladies cried for the loss of life.

Teri was looking very scared and stared at her son, her thoughts

obvious - her son could have been been in the Manor, could have been

killed!

Nolan on the other hand, looked very angry. His hopes to free all the

non consensual woman that had smelt that rancid odour were honourable

but dangerous. The loss of life in his hands.

"I'm going back... tonight!" He stood and stormed out of there.

Teri screamed unheard by her son, "No!"



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXXII (Part 5)

Virginia did not look surprised to see the young man before her bed, a

large comfortable hospital room that she was now confined in, as she

was expecting him. The former head of the family had dispatched

Rachel with the dire news, in the hopes that their leader would return

and lead them in this dark hour.

Flying in, Nolan had seen the destruction of the Manor on the top of

the low mountain. Fully destroyed, at least all parts not built into

the rock and with a good portion of the surrounding forest also gone

by the ensuing fire. The helicopter had circled numerous times, and

Nolan noted even the destruction of the large totem pole before the

main doors.

"How are you feeling Virginia?"

There was certainly no love loss between the two, as Virginia had

enslaved his mother and had brought him into this life that he did not

desire. Yet she was also a very wise and intelligent woman, one whom

was needed for her counsel. She had been part of this family from the

beginning and had lead it for much of her life, she knew the dangerous

power that was contained in the 'Water'.

She ignored his question, "They got Mary."

He nodded, "I'm sorry." Rachel had told him. She had also told him

that his cousin and aunt had been out of the Manor that evening as

they had attended one of the frequent lesbian orgies that happened

each night. Though no longer addicted, the sheer passion that a woman

enjoy while smelling the 'New Water' was still nirvana, and most did

not want too lose that passion - something they had not ever had

before they became a Family-member.

So, Mary was the only one of the victims that he had known which had

died in that assault. Alongside of Virginia, she had been the next

oldest living member in the Family.

"I assume your mom didn't want you to come?"

It was irrelevant and they both knew it. "Do we know who did this?"

Nolan could barely contain his anger.

"We know of one."

That got his attention, and she continued, "He had been particularly

harsh with his slave before she had been 'released'." Evidently this

woman had overheard or had seen something and had told a member of the

Family as a way to thank them for releasing her from the horrors of

the addiction.

Most slaves had run after discovering their souls were not locked to a

scent that their wealthy owners no longer possessed. Some came to the

Island, a few stayed with their masters, but most just disappeared -

Nolan believed their previous masters had them destroyed.

"Is she on the Island?"

"Yes, and I have had her questioned thoroughly." He doubted it not.

"I want to call a meeting of the heads of the family this afternoon,

two." She nodded and he spun about and left.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXXIII (Part 5)

Teri sucked on the five inch cock with love and devotion, wanting to

pleasure her son as she so expertly knew how. She knew ever bump,

every millimetre of that penis and would be able to describe its shape

and even its taste to perfection.

Her son loved her as a mother but also loved her as a slave, and she

would never want to be deemed an equal. This is what she wanted, to

kneel naked before her only son and pleasure him. Her mouth, as she

well knew, could bring him this pleasure for virtually hours.

Every inch of her body had felt the touch of his sperm, every inch of

her body had been touched by his cock, his hands and even his tongue.

She pretended to be his equal in the matters of the heart, as she knew

he wanted this but in her own soul she was but a lowly slave, a slut.

Her son's slut. At that very moment, her only purpose in life was to

suck that beautiful teenage cock.

Nolan had one hand upon the top of his mothers head, surprised that he

did not resist when she came naked to him and knelt, obvious of her

intentions. Even with the emotions that now surrounded everyone upon

the Island, he felt the need to have her suckle him. He was glad for

it, it comforted him and bought a moments piece to his harsh thoughts.

Rachel waited outside the room, watching from the hallway - her body

aching for Nolan's cock, her mouth salivating, her nipples tight and

painful, and her sex a river of desire. She waited with more

documents that he had requested, and to walk him up to the remains of

the Manor. It was nearly time for the meeting.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXXIV (Part 5)

There was nearly a dozen ladies in the room, some faces notably

missing. Killed.

Nolan had ordered the meeting in one of the deep conference rooms

within the mountain, behind the Manor, in the rock. It had been

untouched but each person had to pass the destruction of the lethal

assault to get to the room. Nolan had entered, with a protective

Rachel, and sat at the head of the oval table.

It was very silent, most eyes looked fearful and humble.

Nolan nodded down the table to Virginia, where she sat in her custom

wheelchair. Of the other faces, he knew only one other, Jennifer, his

mother's sister.

"I would not think ill of any woman that wanted to leave this Island?"

He looked at each and none could keep his gaze. Several boats had

already left, but mostly it had been women that had joined the

inhabitants after being freed from the 'Water'. Joined for the

blissful orgies, and for the life of non-judgemental life upon the

island.

When he came to his aunt he watched her for a long time, expecting her

to be the one that wanted to bail. After being freed from her

addiction, Jennifer had quickly left the Island and even her daughter,

to try and return to her husband and her 'normal' life. It could not

be, there was no longer a 'normal' life for a woman that had tasted

the horror and the joy of 'Toilet Water'. Could she sleep in her

husbands bed when she remembered the taste of her daughters sex or the

plunge of her nephews cock within her - knowing that the pleasure,

without the horror, was readily available. She had returned to the

Island and the family within the month, and Nolan had made use of her

intelligence and experience in running this Family.

None in the room opted to leave, they were a part of the family and no

life existed outside it.

Nolan felt pity for them, knowing the ladies were enslaved to him and

the family just as strong as they had been a year before - though it

was much more subtle.

"What do you think our response should be Virginia?" She was the

eldest in the group, the most experienced in ruling and probably the

wisest. As well she was Nolan's primary counsellor, though the two

often had different opinions.

"We have considerable resources, we hit them and we hit them hard."

Several in the room nodded in agreement. After most of her years

being in the Family, Virginia was also very cold hearted when she

needed to be, Nolan thought.

Rachel was one of those that had not nodded, "Rachel - what are your

thoughts?" She had been given the job of keeping the family and the

events of the Island quiet, that none outside a very select circle

knew about.

She didn't look too sure, perhaps it was her age as she was the

youngest female in the room. "Many of our original customers adapted

to our 'New Water', had realized its benefits." A girl would succumb

to the power of the 'Water' if it was addictive or not, simply open a

vial and watch as the strictest virgin turned into the lowest slut.

Besides, caring for a slave for the rest of her years can be very

cumbersome and expensive. A notable few wanted the extra power of the

addiction, and demanded that it was the primary agent that they had

purchased. "Perhaps we could give those that don't, the original

'Water'?"

A couple of other heads nodded, even Virginia's.

Two other council members spoke up. Then Jennifer did, "I think we

have more options than revenge or giving into their terrorist

demands." Everyone listened carefully and this time Nolan nodded.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXXV (Part 5)

They sat about the table and talked animatedly. April, with Rachel's

help, served the food and kept the glasses filled. Nolan and his

family; Teri, Shelly and Jennifer.

Shelly was eyeing her older cousin hungrily, ignoring her food for

sinful thoughts for the only man on the Island. After being released,

Shelly had fought with her mothers demands that they both leave the

Island. The younger woman loved the freedom, the passion that she had

while living here and she also loved her cousin. She had won and her

mother had left without her, abandoning her to this life. Nolan and

Shelly had frequently spent those cold winter evenings together,

before he left to return to school and knew the pleasures of his hard

cock within every hole of her body. She loved him and only wanted to

again pleasure him.

Jennifer was talking about some of the more ludicrous expenditures

that the Island spent to her sister and the two were laughing loudly.

She was the financial controller and with a large staff kept track of

all of the Families mountains of cash.

Nolan was lost in thought, staring at his food, though his cousin

attempted to gain his attention.

The air in the house was tense, sexually so, as every woman wanted to

have that hard teenage cock within her, but none said a word. Even as

Jennifer and Teri laughed and told their stories, they often stole

glances back to the young man.

Regardless of the dangers of the day, it was now night and they had to

sleep or at least retire to the bedroom. Each wanted the privilege of

having their 'Master' to themselves.

Nolan, often introverted and introspective, did not miss the obvious.

He was a teenage boy after all and had already decided whom would

sleep where for the night, only he was not able to release his

thoughts as easily as Jennifer seemed to be.

For one, Nolan wanted to ensure that there was no more blood shed, and

felt he would decide on Virginia's drastic council if there was. As

well he did not want to give into the demands of men that wanted to

enslave women and had killed to further this desire.

The council had talked for two hours and Nolan had spoken little, but

had left after giving some orders about the security and rebuilding of

both the Island and the Manor. It only took money, and the family had

huge amounts of that.

To pull his thoughts away from the dark thoughts the teenager bartered

the possible pleasures that the ladies about him could offer. Oh

certainly he had already chosen, but his mind weighed each woman

against the other, comparing what they had to offer to the desire he

felt within himself that evening.

His thoughts amused him and his mother noticed the change in his

facial expressions. "Finished your supper darling?" She had

interrupted yet another accounting tale from her sister to query her

son.

He looked up and every eye was upon him, "It was fine."

The anxious tension built and even April and Rachel stood still,

awaiting the sleeping arrangements.

Things on the Island had changed in the last year, no longer could a

person of seniority demand the sexual favours of another. Often with

the use of the 'Water' to ensure their demands are met. Tony had been

famous at pushing the envelope at what a woman deemed moral, and it

was the secret to his success at breaking new slaves. Yet, every

woman in that room would walk into a bullet for Nolan and would jump

at the chance to pleasure him in any way imaginable.

The silence was unbearable to every woman in the room and it was Teri,

Nolan's mother that broke it, "Darling, whom do you desire tonight?"

She hopped that she could be with her son, but doubted it since there

were ladies that he has not tasted for some time waiting but a nod.

Nolan smiled, which only increased the tension, remembering some of

the fun Tony had shown Nolan.

"Rachel?"

"Master?" It was a slip of the tongue and Jennifer frowned at the

younger woman.

"You have some 'Water' in the house don't you?"

Rachel was practically beaming with pleasure, "Oh yes Nolan, as much

as we need."

"Good. I want you and April to take Shelly upstairs and keep her

occupied till morning." Shelly looked openly disappointed, and Rachel

marginally less, but all three nodded in acceptance. It would be a

night of 'Water' induced lesbian lust.

Each gave Nolan a kiss upon his lips, Shelly lingering, as they

departed. He was left with his mother and aunt. They both looked

expectant.

"I was remembering some of what we did so many months ago, do you

remember?"

They nodded, Teri now biting her lip, a nervous habit. Jennifer spoke

up, "Most of it, yes."

"Did you enjoy it aunt Jennifer?"

She could barely look into his brown eyes for a few seconds before she

felt the flow between her legs dampen her panties. Jennifer had to

turn her eyes away. "Very much Nolan."

Instead of a command to crawl to him, suck his cock and lick each

others faces, as the two ladies expected, he asked, "Did we do the

right thing?"

Teri frowned, not understanding. But Jennifer thought she did, "I

hope so." His gaze turned serious and his aunt could not even look

into his eyes for a brief second.

"Aunt Jennifer, you left us but returned very quickly. Why?" Nolan

thought he knew, but he could never understand it - how could he, he

was never addicted to the 'Water'.

Jennifer toyed with her food and felt her younger sister and her

nephews eyes upon her, awaiting an answer. "Its the only place I now

belong."

"Because Tony had brought you here for me?" After revealing a small

piece of Nolan's psych, Tony had sent a team to retrieve Jennifer and

her daughter, enslaving them with the 'Toilet Water' - forever

changing their lives. It had been his method of befriending Nolan.

She nodded slowly, "Partially."

"Why did you come back, why don't you leave now?"

A tear came to Jennifer's eye, and her sister reached out to grasp her

hand. "I can never leave, when I first smelt the 'Water' the life

that I had known was but a memory."

It was tragic, and each of the three knew it, Jennifer had a good life

with a fine husband. The 'Water' had taken everything from her,

including her life as a mother, since she and her daughter often

'performed' for Tony and eventually Nolan. How could their

relationship ever be the same?

Nolan frowned, "Would it have been easier if you didn't have the

choice to leave?"

Jennifer again looked into her nephew's eye surprised, "I suppose."

"And mom?" Teri quickly turned her gaze to her son. "Did you ever

think about my sexual pleasure before you smelt the 'Water'?"

Nolan had never seen his mother blush, and he had seen her do and act

rather bawdy, but she turned her eyes down to her own plate and

whispered, "I wondered."

"How so?"

It took a few awkward seconds before she answered, "I wondered if you

had enough time to date." He was about to ask another question when

she continued, "If there was a special girl in your life. I sometimes

even wondered about what you did to... relieve yourself." Her face

was bright red. She had just acknowledged that she had thought sexual

thoughts of her son before she had been 'conditioned' to think that

way.

Nolan was rather surprised, "Did anyone ever ask this of you when you

were being trained?" She nodded positively. He knew that her

training may not have been as difficult has he had always imagined.

"Aunt Jenn," his pet name for her and the older woman felt her sex

twitch in response, "if I was to hand you two vials of 'Water', one

the original the another the new batch - and I told you that you had

to chose the remainder of your life by choosing one. Which would you

choose?"

It was a complex question, and Nolan didn't think it came out right

but Jennifer frowned. "To live the life of an addictive slave or...?"

"Or to be turned out of the Family", both ladies inhaled shapely, "but

have an endless supply of the new version of 'Toilet Water'."

The silence was thick but it was interrupted by the sudden squeal of

pleasure from somewhere upstairs - Shelly most probably.

Jennifer had stated that she had no other life but the one that she

lived with the Family, and she now enjoyed her new life. Though she

also regretted the loss of the former as well.

"I would take the addictive one, the original 'Water'." Nolan didn't

try to hide his surprise.

"Aunty Jenn! You of all people?" She was a mature intelligent woman

with a lot going for her, Nolan had thought the answer would have been

to live outside the Island and to enjoy the scent as often as she

wished.

"Its now my family." Teri nodded in agreement, her sister defending

her answer. "And you are the head of my family Nolan."

"What does that mean to you Jenn?"

Another twitch, this time her sister saw the sudden clench of her

mature thighs and smiled knowingly. "It means...", she paused and

looked down at her own thighs, clenching lewdly, "... it means I would

do anything for you."

"Anything?" He wore a half smile again, his thoughts turning away

from the burden as head of the 'Family'.

Jennifer stood up and motioned to her obvious damp spot on the front

of her skirt where her own hand had pressed the cloth between her

thighs, "This needs you so bad Master." She began to disrobe before

the two other family members while talking. "I have done some

incredible stuff, things I would not have even imagined but in

retrospect would not change for anything."

Teri was clenching her own thighs while watching her elder sister
disrobe, "Like what sis?"

Jennifer looked down amused at the game her sister was playing. "I

have fucked my nephew, I have licked his sperm from my daughters three

holes, I have intimately explored my own sisters cunt and asshole...!"

Both ladies were panting - and though Jennifer had done much more

under the command of Tony, it didn't seem like the place to voice it.

Standing straight, naked and very aroused, "It means, most of all

Master, that I desire you. I need you, my body needs you. I live now

only for you. My previous life was nothing... only now do I truly

live!" Her breasts were large, like her sisters, but looked older.

Her thighs wider and her ass more generous and lower. She looked

older, and probably took less care of her body than Teri did. Yet

both people in that room wanted her very much at that moment.

Jennifer pushed the soiled dishes from the large wooden table, many

crashing to shards upon the floor, and climbed slowly upon it. Nolan

and his mother watched, one with a hard cock and the other with a wet

pussy. When the ascent was complete, Nolan's aunt lay upon her back

with legs spread wide, with feet over either side of the table. She

slipped both hands between her legs and began to fondle herself.

"My darling nephew... without the addictive properties of the toilet
Water, I still need to be with you. My body is only for you my love."

Two fingers slipped into her vagina and a finger from the other hand

slipped her her anus.

Teri began to crawl upon the table, her face over her sisters,

inverted. No words needed to be said as the elder leaned down and

began to kiss passionately with the hungry mouth below. Nolan watched

with hunger in his eyes, his aunts sex a few feet from him.

Nolan's mom had taken the initiative and broke the kiss, her eyes

lifting up her sisters body to the hands busy between the spread soft

thighs. She began to crawl up the body, raining kisses on the pale

soft skin.

Jennifer groaned out loudly as her older sister didn't hesitate to

take her enlarged and sensitive clitoris between her lips and suck.

After that first wave of pleasure, a deep seated need to taste the

woman, her own sister above her, was paramount and she removed her

hands from her body and fumbled with the loose skirt that covered her

face.

Nolan sat, his mind returning to the conversation from earlier while

his aunt's face pressed upwards into the hidden valley beneath his

mothers pleated skirt. Both elder ladies began to suck, lick and

tongue every tasty and sensitive millimetre of the others sex.

This, what was happening on the table before him, would it have ever

happened if not for the toilet Water? Nolan knew it would not. Yet,

the 'Water' was not even in the air - and these two women were so

passionate that they committed incest willingly and even aggressively,

if his aunt was any indication.

Was the situation before he 'cured the slaves' of the family better

than it was now? Was it better when the women had no choice but had

to submit to him better than it was now? Or was it like his aunt had

essentially said, that she still had no choice, though her situation

has changed, and was still a submissive to his every whim.

Teri looked up from between her sisters thighs, her face coated in the

tangy spend, intending on seducing her son with a soiled smile -

something that had worked so often in the past. Yet, he was not in

his chair, and looking about it was evident that he was no longer

within the dining room.

The elder woman froze, worry immediately coming to mind. But a gentle

bite between the teeth of her sister brought her back to reality and

her passion. If her son did not desire to be with them, his will was

to be accepted if not understood, then his own mother must learn to

simply enjoy the moment.

Teri's grin had disappeared and though she lost the edge of her

enjoyment, and would not feel the tremors of orgasm this evening, she

give her sister hours of pleasure.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXXVI (Part 5)

"Hello... Nolan, Master?" It was a tiny voice, submissive, that

brought him out of his mental cloud.

A woman, with a tiny body to match the voice stood upon the rocks, her

face in shadow. She shuffled nervously and seemed embarrassed to

interrupt the head of the family as he sat on the beach beneath the

half moon.

"Yes? Who is it?"

She came closer, having to step down to the cool sand but stayed

between two large sand cliffs so her face and body stayed in the

shadow. "My name is Tuesday."

Strange name, thought Nolan. "May I help you?" He remembered the

scene of his aunt and mother upon the dinning room table, what he had

given up to get privacy - only to have it now interrupted. Thus, his

voice was not very polite in his query.

"I am sorry." Tuesday turned to leave, evidently to climb barefoot up

the sandy cliffs behind her.

"Stop." His voice had taken on the note of a command, something he

had learnt to do since he first stepped foot on this island. She

again turned. "Come here." He pointed to the sand a meter before

him, nearly in the surf.

Tuesday hesitated then strode silently forwards, her movement and

steps silent with the loud crashing of the waves. He saw that she

wore no shoes and a flowing loose summer dress, that blew against her

small frame with the warm south westerly wind.

Nolan looked up to see that she had long, to her tail bone, flowing

blond hair that seemed to glow as it flew horizontal with the wind.

But when his eyes came to her face, he saw that she had been recently

scared - from jaw to mouth - with the stitches visible.

When he saw the harm that had recently come to her, he stood up and

leaned in to see her marred face. Only when he was inches from her

cheek, did he see that she was a very beautiful woman - before the

cut, possibly his own age or a couple years younger. She looked

embarrassed at his scrutiny.

"Did that happen during the assault?"

"No Master, my father had done this to me."

Her father! "Explain."

What came from her, reluctantly and had to have it drawn out of her

continuously, was nothing less than tragic. Tuesday was an orphan of

Toilet Water - of all these games of power that Nolan had been

contemplating only minutes before. Here was the flesh and blood

example of how the use of power can affect others.

Tuesday was named for the day of the week that she was ordered to

attend to her father, her Master at that time. She had been born a

slave, her mother being the niece of the same man, but she had been

conceived before toilet Water had been forced upon her mother. It had

been a way to silence a incestuous relationship that would have harmed

her father politically and possibly financially. The daughter that

was born lived her early life as an object, with no friends nor any

schooling of any sort, all she had was the work that was assigned to

her by her father. When she was eleven, before she hit puberty, her

father had raped her - her mother would help him. It happened more

times than the young teenager could count. When she no longer

screamed out or fought her mother or father, she had been exposed to

the drug that her mother was so intimate with. Then she found herself

in a cloud of sex mingled with days of hard work about the huge

mansion. Tuesday was the day that she attended to her fathers every

whim, mostly sexual, some not. On other days she lived in a large

room, with only pillows for furniture with six other girls - one being

her mother. Her life was for the pleasure of her father.

Then one day, a party that father was hosting for some friends, the

vials of scent were opened and Tuesday was instructed to sit upon her

mothers face as she sucked Thursday's nipples - she did this with lust

and desire, as she always did when the scent was in the air. The

other girls copulating with the individual guests, her father watching

his successful party with pride.

When the scent had disintegrated and her body began to quiver with

exhaustion Tuesday realized that a part of her was missing - the

indescribably desire for more of that delicious smell was gone. Her

father grunted for his only daughter to come and suck him, she then

spoke what would ultimately change her life, "Please daddy", he liked

to be called 'daddy' especially when others were witness to his

domination of his own flesh and blood, "I am too tired!" She lay

exhausted upon her mothers body, their flesh stuck together with

sweat, saliva and female spend.

Tuesday can still remember her fathers eyes as they blazed with anger,

for it was the first time that he had been disobeyed.

Nolan understood what had happened, that his antidote of toilet Water

was given out without knowledge by his patrons, and given to the

multitudes of slaves out there. What happened next was disgusting.

Two of the slaves were killed by her father that evening...

strangulation. Then, it being Tuesday, he bound his daughter to a

chair and raped her numerous times while screaming and hitting her.

Months went by, of dirty cells, often with other women huddled naked

together to keep warm, barely enough food for one let alone for the

five of them, of humiliating actions with her father or for unknown

sized groups, like being used as a toilet by over a dozen men.

Another gathering, only two others besides her father, when Tuesday

and her mother were bound next to each other over a large wooden

bench. Both raised bottoms were used numerous times, in either hole,

until the pain blacked her mother out. That was when Tuesday heard

her father talk about their plan to hit the family as vengeance for

the changing of Water, to demand the old formula back, to perhaps even

find it. Obviously they thought Tuesday was also blacked out, as she

hung lifeless upon the bench.

Then, for bravado's sake to brag to the other men, her father simply

shoved a long spiked pole into her mothers rectum and pressed it till

it exposed just below her skull - killing her soundlessly. The men
laughed and Tuesday screamed in terror.

Then she remembered her father coming toward her with a large shiny

knife and then nothing, till she woke up in the hospital on this very

island.

But when Tuesday finally spoke up, voicing what she had come to him

for, it broke his heart. "I just wanted to ... to thank you for

freeing me Master." Her beautiful blue eyes were pouring with tears.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXXVII (Part 5)

Rachel sat behind Nolan with a demure Tuesday standing beside her.

Nolan sat at the head of the huge conference table, on top of the tall

office building in a large city within the United States. Before him,

about the table, sat many clients to the family - powerful and very

rich men.

They were nodding in agreement with what Nolan had just related, a

speech that Jennifer helped compile for him. About how the family was

changing, but was keeping its clients in mind, reducing prices, while

strengthening the ties with the oldest and best clients - these men.

Rachel took the notes from Nolan, acting as secretary for this

gathering. Tuesday, feeling very out of place and scared, had only

the duty to stay near her Master.

Things were going to change and with Jennifer orchestrating the

changes and Nolan enacting them, the family was about undergo another

radical change.

The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXXVIII (Part 5)

Tuesday slept in the large soft bed next to Nolan, her exposed chest

rising and falling slowly. He sat and watched her, always amazed at

the strength this ex-slave possessed.

She was also extremely beautiful, if you looked past the scar upon her

face. Tiny of frame, with petite facial features to match, maybe five

feet tall. She weighed nothing. Had small conical, but exquisite,

breasts. Smooth feminine curves. Skin that seemed to have a

perpetual tan, that highlighted her blonde hair to perfection. She

was Nolan's' age, but looked a couple of years younger.

In truth she could not read or write, she did not know the simplest of

transactions with money, or even the simplest edict. Since her birth,

she had been treated as property, working for her masters household -

since puberty, as sexual chattel. Even before that first rape, she

had been taught to be conscious of her body, as a tool to pleasure

another, to learn to be gentle and quiet while hard enough to handle

the roughest of treatment.

That first night, over a month before, when she had come to him on the

beach - too embarrassed to appear before him with others that may see

her imperfection - he had felt something in his heart that he had not

ever felt for another woman before. Nolan wanted to protect Tuesday,

to keep her safe from monsters like her father - while knowing that

her training from birth kept her vulnerable to such a beast.

Was he like that man? Was Nolan a monster in a different skin?

Had she not submitted to him that first night - much to his disgust

for his actions afterword's? Did she not scream out with passion when

his seed flooded inside her?

It was her nature - what she needed to be alive. If only she had not

ended up with the man she had, her own father. To feel again, she

needed someone to submit too, to give and receive pleasure as she had

been taught since before she could walk.

She clung to him and cried for such a long time afterwords, begging

his forgiveness - of all things! He knew then, felt it within his

heart, that he wanted to protect her - knowing that she needed

someone, probably anyone, to submit too - to love her.

To stop her tears, Nolan rolled her over upon the wet sand and felt

his cock again enter her. She screamed with joy as he again plowed

above her - again flooding her with his spend.

The plane banked and Nolan was brought of his thoughts, if only for a

moment. Life was so strange - he had so many women that wanted

nothing more than to be with him in this bed, to feel his manhood

within them, that he should feel so enamoured with only one woman.

Tuesdays eyes opened and saw that her Master was awake and she awoke

fully, remembering the sounds and feeling of his pleasure that she had

given him hours before - the lingering taste of his seed still upon

her tongue.

"Master?" She smiled shyly - hoping that he would again want her to

pleasure him.

"Morning Tuesday. Did you sleep well?"

Never had she been given such tender affection, such devotion and

protection. Though well trained, she was used to harsh touches,

forced cocks, smelling cunts, and that irresistible desire from the

Toilet Water forcing her to want more. Nolan had been a different

person than she had ever known - her joy was endless.

She nodded and stretched, looking almost feline, Nolan thought. "Are

we nearly home Master?" She meant the island.

"Over Washington state." Though Tuesday had no knowledge of geography

she nodded and smiled, and Nolan knew that it did not matter to her

where they were - only that she was with her Master and that he was

smiling.

A knock came to the thin wooden door, "Nolan, are you awake?" Rachel

stuck her head in and smiled at the couple. She had a stack of emails

that appeared to look important. The voluptuous redhead stilled the

pang of jealousy that came to her at seeing Nolan so happy with

another. "I wouldn't bother you if it wasn't important?" She also

felt extreme pleasure at Nolan's obvious love.

"I'm sure it is Rachel." Nolan lay back and sighed extravagantly,

"Come in."

The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXXIX (Part 5)

Teri was brushing the long blonde hair with soft gentle strokes, with

her son watching from the couch beneath the window. It had not been

so long ago that she had taken her son's virginity in this very room -

and the middle-aged woman felt a tremor as her sex liquefied at the

memory. To her, it was not the addiction to the 'Water' that had

altered her life, but the night she first had relations with her own

child.

She knew of his passion and even love for this tiny woman who sat

before her. So unlike any person that Nolan could have ever known -

but a product of his, and the Families, actions. Certainly she was a

beauty, the scar easily lost when looking into those wide innocent

blue eyes.

Tuesday was like a lost child, clinging to Nolan's leg begging not to

be let go if only she could give him one more moments pleasure. Well,

thought Teri, it wasn't exactly true - but it could appear that way to

someone that didn't know that it was her son that also held tightly.

Since that first evening when Nolan had disappeared leaving her alone

with her sister, he has not had need for his own mother to attend his

needs. It was Teri that felt it necessary to press the issue - though

humiliating herself, having always thought it was for her son that she

bedded with him.

Rachel and Jennifer had told her what was going on, with regards to

the family business. It startled her that her own son could be so

cold, while seated now behind her, appeared so lost in love for this

small creature before her, that he could command such acts.

They were in a war, and Nolan appeared as if he was on his honeymoon.

"Honey?" She looked up into the mirror and saw that her son looked

back. Teri's hands continued to comb the thick long hair of her sons

love.

"Will you need anything else before bed?"

Nolan saw his mother flush with embarrassment, and knew what she was

asking and knew of her need. Tuesday, not understanding opened her

eyes and innocently looked up into the elder womans face in the

mirror.

"I don't believe so mother." It amused him that she was putting

herself in this situation.

A few more brush strokes before she again spoke, "I could have April

cut some fruit up or..."

"No mother." His eyes were firmer and glaring at her in the mirror.

Tuesday, not understanding the exchange, only heard the displeasure in

her Masters voice and froze. Nolan and his mother noticed her sudden

tense movement.

Though not able to again look her son in the eye, she had to ask again

- more blatantly this time, "Would you like me to attend to you this

evening my darling?"

They had spent so much time together since that first afternoon not so

long ago, his seed had filled her soul and Teri found that she

desperately needed it like breath itself.

Before Nolan could reply, was about to order her to retrieve April and

perhaps the two of them could relieve his mothers tensions, Tuesday

spoke softly. "Teri?"

Tuesday turned about and the older woman saw the compassion and

understanding in the youngster's eyes, she did not resist when a tiny

soft hand reached up to caress her cheek.

Nolan watched amazed as his mother lowered her face, with the guidance

of his new lovers hand, so that their lips touched. Tuesday kissed so

softly that it almost looked like they did not touch, but he could

hear his mothers throaty sigh of pleasure.

Tuesday continued to kiss as she turned about and then slowly stood

up, her gown falling to the floor at her feet with barely a whisper.

Her tiny naked body looking so youthful yet so sexy that it continued

to enthral her Master.

Teri followed the moist warm lips with her own, her eyes closed and

her mind uncaring where she should lead. She needed this to continue,

passion mixed with more... love. It was for her son, she knew, that

the pleasure was for - though another woman was kissing her, it was as

if she kissed her son. She knew him better than to open her eyes to

find out if he enjoyed this - his silence was enough.

Those lips never left and she felt like she was floating on a cloud,

with only a part of her brain realizing that delicate gentle hands

were systematically removing every article of clothing from her body.

The lips lowered and Teri followed, till she felt the wooden floor

upon her naked back and ass, the small body moving above her.

Then Tuesday spoke, nearly whispering to the older woman - "Relax

mother... enjoy." Feather touches, lips, moved lower down her body.

Not even noticing that the woman had called her 'mother' for the first

time.

Nolan had to move to the end of the bed to watch what was happening

with his mother and Tuesday, amazed at how gentle and serene it all

looked. Tuesday lingered her mouth upon his mothers thrusting

breasts, the nipples looking about to crack with tension. Her dainty

tongue thrusting into the groove of mothers navel and mother was going

crazy, twisting upon the floor, moaning and sighing as if she was

seconds away from an orgasm. It amazed him that she responded this

way, and without the scent of the Water in the air.

Tuesday then moved lower, skipping over the exposed needy loins and

moving to the feet. Nolan had not seen a woman orally pleasure the

feet of another - but his mother evidently loved it.

Then upwards, it seemed to take an eternity, the calves and then

behind the knees. Then Tuesday spent an intolerable amount of time

upon his mothers soft inviting white thighs - raining kisses and and

soft touches till it appeared as if his mother was loosing her mind

with the passion that she endured.

Then, finally, Tuesday moved her face the last couple of centimetres

and the small dainty tongue slipped out of the tiny mouth and slipped

into the top of that very wet hot groove and the thrusting button.

Teri exploded in orgasm, screaming and crying out with such a pleasure

that she had not ever achieved, without toilet Water of course.

Tuesday didn't wait for her to end her pleasure, but slipped quickly

up and pressed her tiny body against the white flesh below. The two

groins touching, and as had been the rainfall of kisses, the younger

began to rotate and thrust gently with her excited vagina pleasuring

the older woman's below.

What happened next amazed her son, as the new feeling of her clitoris

mashing expertly against the other, renewed her pleasure and instead

of dropping from the heights of orgasm, she danced about the summit as

more climaxes smashed through her happy body. Teri was experiencing

multiple orgasms by another woman, a mere youth, as her son sat

watching with wide hungry eyes and a smile.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXXX (Part 5)

The new product was shipping, in addition to the normal 'Water' that

the clients paid huge sums for. The new product was for specific

clients - rich and powerful clients. Dangerous clients.

Nolan personally ensured Tuesday's father received this new product.

So, in the first week only a limited amount was being shipped out. By

the end of the month is was ten times what it had started at. And at

exorbitant prices as well.

Nolan then ordered the shipments to cease to only one client,

Tuesday's father.

Private messages went out to a dozen others.

Virginia sat in her wheelchair frowning, she never smiled nice Mary

had been killed, and stared with her hard powerful gaze at the head of

the Family. What Nolan was doing went against her judgement and

thought it dangerous, in the very least.

Nolan stood by the wide window, staring down the hill and over the

ocean as the sun set with glossy colours.

If truth be told, Virginia did not think the young man had the 'balls'

to do what he was doing - and accredited this change in demeanour to

the appearance of Tuesday.

"Damn it Nolan, I asked you a question!"

When he turned his eyes were colder than she ever remembered them and

it caused a shiver to run through her old tiny frame.

"Its too late Virginia - what's done is done."

She huffed and struck the arm of her chair. Two female attendants

over by the doorway shuffled their feet and looked like they would

like to be anywhere but there. They were of the new batch of

arrivals, the ones that Tony had added to the family before being

excommunicated for good this time.

Jennifer reached out and grasped her nephews arm, giving him a

squeeze. Perhaps it was to calm him down perhaps it was to give him

support - but it only made him madder, interrupting his confrontation

with the family matriarch, the one who had seduced him and raped his

mother to this new lifestyle.

"You should be too busy with your new job to worry about 'Water'

production?"

The old woman huffed again and glared at the young man, "That's

another thing Nolan...!"

Nolan could not take it any longer - Tuesday had been enslaved with

the 'Toilet Water' when Virginia had been head of the Family. It had

been this old woman that had produced and sold the addictive water to

keep the family coffers filled. To him, she was the same as Tony,

only in a different shell.

"Shut up!" It was the first time that Nolan had shouted at another

person and every one within that large room froze and starred at the

only man on the island.

"Listen to me Virginia - whatever you may have been, that's over. I

no longer seek or want your advice. Do you understand me?"

He eyes were like black coal, unblinking for nearly a full minute

before she nodded.

"Contrary to my wishes, I was convinced in giving you some formal

job", Jennifer looked down at her shoes and wished the same wish as

the two attendants had done earlier, "to keep you busy enough to keep

you out of trouble."

Virginia had seen Nolan's aunt turn gray at the mention of 'advice'

and understood whom had protected her from being completely ostracized

from the inner circle of the Family. She would not forget that

favour.

Finally, "I... thank you Nolan... Master." Virginia turned her gaze

away from the angry young man, realizing with a start, that he had

grown up considerably since he had first come to the island.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXXXI (Part 5)

The house was rebuilt and Nolan moved in with those closest to him,

along with a company of trained female guards. Virginia had rebuild

over the damaged sections. It was her duty now, design the

infrastructure of the island to the specifications that Nolan had set

out.

When the communication finally arrived, Nolan seemed to fall into a

black pit of depression.

That very day another man walked upon the island - the only person

alive that Nolan wanted to kill.

That would not be necessary, not after what Nolan had done with him.

The man was naked and shackled, his arms behind his back and his feet

only a meter apart. No one helped him, as he hobbled up the long

winding road to the large house at the top. It was the home of the

man he had tried to destroy.

A room had been prepared for such audiences - and the man was forced

to his knees before a bench. The room was white marble and with

little else. He knelt there shivering violently, tears of humiliation

and possibly rage rolling down his dirty cheeks.

The heads of the family stood around the circumference of the room.

Most with their backs to the cold marble. Even those woman whom had

agreed with Nolan on his course of action felt there resolve crumble

at facing the reality of it.

Teri came through a doorway behind the single bench, holding Tuesdays

hand, the young woman looking deathly frightened. Nolan's mother had

to hold the young woman in her arms as they stood to the side of the

bench. April came gliding in from the same door, her hand holding a

small glass of water, and strode over to Teri and Tuesday. The petite
ex-slave gently helped Tuesday to drink from her glass.

The man never even looked up at as the room was filling - only

wallowing in his self-pity and despair.

Then Rachel and Jennifer came in through another doorway, and strode

to the other side of the bench. Rachel, particularly, had the

harshest look - starring almost with rage at the naked bound man on

the floor before her. Her Celtic anger surfacing.

Nolan came in finally, and though no one had said a word, the small

sounds had ceased. Every eye, including the naked soiled man,

followed the teenage boy as he strode slowly and confidently into the

room, and sat upon the wide white marble bench.

It was deathly quiet in the chamber and not one person understood what

was about to happen, knew what was in their Master's heart or his

mind. Most understood his rage though, much of it aimed at the bound

man before him.

Nolan looked up at the stain-glass dome above all their heads and took

a deep breath. Before coming here, he had to control himself, to

still his rage and try to use his mind rather than his heart.

The young head of the family had power absolute over everyone on the

island - and he knew it, now more than at any other time since his

mother seduced him to the pleasures the family promised. Virginia had

a hard cold heart, from years of servitude of watching good people

enslaved for the pleasures of others - Nolan understood her more now

than at any other time. Understood her loneliness as well.

Finally, his breathing under control, the young man looked right at

the dirty face of the middle-aged naked man kneeling before him.

"Say hello to your daughter."

Tuesday sobbed and the man's eyes followed the sound and his face

looking shocked at her appearance before him. Teri and April held the

young girl in a compassionate embrace, lending her their strength to

get through this trying time.

"Tuesay...?" His voice was like sandpaper, ill used of late except to

scream out his pain and loss.

More than one eye in the room held tears.

"You are fortunate to be part of this momentous change of the Family."

No one said a word, nothing was spoken, even breathing seemed to have

stopped. "Where 'slave' takes upon a whole new meaning."

Nolan reached into his pocket and withdrew a small vial, it contained

a clear blue liquid. The man looked feverish at Nolan's hand and the

vial.

"From now on our enemies", at this Nolan smiled down at Tuesday's

father, "will understand what built this Family." Nolan tossed the

vial in the air and caught it.

"We were built on the foundation of sex and submission", incest as

well, but he thought it best not to mention that subject, " based

wholly upon 'Toilet Water'." He was making speeches, not only for the

bound dirty man in the middle of the room but for all the heads of his

Family. "To add power to the Family, 'Toilet Water' was distributed,

for a price, to those rich enough to pay. And pay they did!"

Again he tossed it into the air.

"When I removed the destructive powers from the 'Toilet Water', the

addictive quality of it, some were angry, while others saw the wisdom

in this."

At the far end of the room Virginia rolled into the room on her

wheelchair and Nolan paused till she settled herself.

"A handful of the angry clients brought violence and death to his

island, to this Family!" Nolan was getting angry again, his voice

getting louder and louder so that it reverberated off the large

rectangular room.

"Here is one of them." He pointed downwards and all eyes looked at

the disgusting creature on the floor. "Here is another addict of

'Toilet Water', only one of a dozen men that are now addicted to the

Family's legacy!"

"His supply was cut off two weeks ago - and like many women slaves

before him, he knows the torture of his addiction." He was the only

one to have his supply cut off, the others found ways to meet the

increasing price of their addiction - or else, they would face the

fate of their compatriot.

Nolan held the vial between thumb and forefinger, "This is the last of

the 'Toilet Water' that you will ever see... the rest of your days

will be in madness and loss."

Tears were rolling down the mans eyes but he watched the blue liquid

feverishly.

Every woman in the room watched the drama and understood that at some

time in their past, it was they who had knelt and who would do

anything for only another hit of the heavenly scent. Nolan had

delivered them from that wasteland of addiction - while he had also

re-introduced it again for his enemies.

The vial flew from Nolan's hand and in a slow arch, flew before the

kneeling addict. As if in slow motion, nearly every eye watched its

descent knowing it would disintegrate upon the hard shiny marble.

It shattered a meter before the bound man and he crawled upon his

knees before the small puddle of glass and liquid before dropping to

his stomach his face on the marble. The man sighed hugely and started

to move his hips, pressing his groin against the marble beneath him.

Blood from tiny cuts upon his face and chest caused the blue liquid to

take on a ghoulish colour when mixed with his blood.

Every eye in the room watched the drama, every eye was now dry. The

man humping the floor was one of the worst offenders, one who had

killed to ensure his use of 'Toilet Water'. It was a pathetic

spectacle but it was also a rebirth to those who saw it.

Nolan turned and strode quickly from the room. His mother and April

lead the silent Tuesday after him.

All of the senior members of the family strode from the room leaving

Virginia seated alone watching one of her ex-customers attain his

orgasm upon the tiles. He was grunting and spitting as he shot is

come between his hairy belly and the marble.

Then, even she, turned her chair around and wheeled out of the room

that Nolan had aptly named "Hall of Justice".



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXXXII (Part 5)

Shelly walked down the docks from the sea-plane that had just

deposited her onto the family island. Its was the first time in three

years since she had set foot on the place where so much of her life

was turned around.

Jennifer, Shelly's mom ran forwards with a squeal of delight. "Where

is he?"

Shelly smiled at her mother's obvious happiness and held out the

bundle in her hands. "Mom meet my son Joseph."

Jennifer pulled aside the edge of the wrap and stared down into the

cherub face of the five month old baby. The older woman had tears in

her eyes. The adoption agency had brought the newborn to Shelly and

her husband, the perfect parents by all accounts, though they could

not have children of their own.

Shelly looked up from her happy parent to the middle-aged woman

waiting patiently at the end of the dock - and she knew this was the

woman whom her mom had made a commitment too, her lover, her wife.

They shared a polite introductory smile.

Teri appeared with Rachel and both were smiling hugely. Jennifer

looked over at her sister and with tears in her eyes, "Look what my

daughter has gone and done - she brought me my grandchild!" Teri

wrapped her arms about her sisters shoulder and kissed the side of her

face tenderly.

Shelly asked quietly, so not to disturb her mother or her child.

"Where is he?"

Rachel leaned in to answer, "With Tuesday down by the south bay."

"How is he doing?"

Rachel shrugged and looked suddenly saddened.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXXXIII (Part 5)

Rachel and Shelly carefully walked across the natural pathway of round

slick rocks, that were revealed with the low tides. "Nolan!"

He was seated on a huge log, his feet in a pool of sea water and

weeds. Tuesday, who had was wadding up to her knees in the water,

turned quickly at the call and waved happily. Nolan only turned his

head and gave a bare smile and watched his cousin approach him.

Shelly came over and sat down by her cousin while Rachel went to

Tuesday, to give the two space to talk. "I told you I would return",

she told him.

He did not look pleased, "I thought you might."

Three years ago Shelly had left and swore she would be back, Nolan

asked her never to return.

"How is the Family?"

He was the uncontested head of the family now - Virginia having passed

away five years ago, and Tony just last year. And in truth, no one

else wanted the burden that seemed to weigh down Nolan.

Nolan finally shrugged, "Good... quiet."

"I brought my son!" She was beaming proudly and Nolan smiled

genuinely for the first time since she appeared.

"I bet he is beautiful?" Any woman that tasted the scent of the

'Water' could never have children - so Shelly's adoption of her son

was rare gift to any ex-slave.

It had been five years ago when Nolan had coldly dealt with the family
enemies, addicting seventeen powerful men to a male version of 'Toilet

Water'. That in itself was not the catalyst to the end of the reign

of lust, but the sight of that single powerful man humiliated before

the very women whom he had enslaved. The elders that had viewed it

had passed it quickly down to the other family women till each heard

the tale - and none that heard it was the same afterwords. It was an

awakening to the women, that their lives need not be controlled by

another, that what they feared and obeyed may only be fear itself.

Without the addictive quality to the 'Water', they were free to do

what they wished.

Shelly suddenly stopped smiling and reached for her cousins hand, "I'm

sorry Nolan."

That surprised him. "'Sorry' for what Shelly?"

She shrugged and had to think long before the ability to put into

words what she felt, "'Sorry' that you gave up everything so that the

rest of us could be free?" Every inhabitant of the Island thought of

Nolan as the last victim of the addictive scent.

They looked into each others eyes for a long moment before Nolan's

started to cloud up with tears.

Since that fateful day five years before, the family had changed

significantly. No new clients were sought after for their product,

while money flowed in through legitimate endeavours as well as through

their previous clientele. Every woman that had been addicted to the

'Water' was a member of the Family, and as such gained in any benefits

that were supplied. One of those benefits was this island - a

paradise of solitude and relaxation. No man, excluding Nolan, could

live here yet any female family member could live without a care in

the world for as long as they wished on the island.

Both cousins looked out toward the duo, Tuesday and Rachel, as they

stomped around on their bare feet looking for oysters - Nolan loved

them both.

Tuesday was the last slave, in all respects. Her life was Nolan - and

this one time he did not contest this position but rather revelled in

the passions it promised.

Shelly leaned in and kissed her cousins cheek and whispered, "May I be

with you tonight Nolan?"

He turned, a little surprised at the offer. "What of your husband?"

She shrugged, "Here on the island, all that matters is the Family."

And he was now the family - no woman that had been a slave to the

sweet smell of lust would ever deny this young many anything,

especially their bodies. It was now almost religious the way they

canonized the only man in their Family. He was their god.

Shelly lay her head on his shoulder, hoping he will desire her. She

was realistic enough to understand that his guilt and pain could not

be relieved by anything she did, but at least she would do her best to

ensure he forgot it for a short while.

One of his familiar hands slipped down her back to slip beneath the

waistband of her shorts and Tuesday sighed with pleasure knowing from

experience that her offer was accepted.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXXXIX (Part 5)

Jennifer dropped heavily down onto the couch next to her sister and

sighed with exhaustion, "I forgot how much work babies are!"

Teri giggled, both knowing the pleasures and disappointments of

children. Both having known theirs intimately.

"It was good to see Shelly - she looks so happy."

Jennifer nodded and reached for her wine glass, "I am glad she was

able to have a 'normal' life after... you know." Teri did but only

sipped from her glass in answer. "Her husband is such a good man."

The two sisters had attended the wedding on the mainland, and were

witness to Shelly's love. Both knew, but neither were puzzled, that

Shelly was right now at the top of the hill with her cousin.

Jennifer had married as well, barely a year ago, to another ex-slave

of approximately the same age as her. Strangely her wife looked

incredibly like her sister Teri - but no one ever mentioned it. While

her sister Teri had devoted her whole life and soul to her son, she

never regretted it for a second.

"Do you want to stay with me tonight Jenn?"

The middle-aged woman, the matriarch of the Family, looked at her

sister above the rim of her glass and accepted with only a look in her

eyes - rarely did she deny her sister anything.



The Sweet Smell of Lust - LXXXX (Part 5)

April knelt upon the mat with the canvas propped up before her, she

stared carefully at the setting sun before bringing her brush up to

the canvas. Her life now was painting and Nolan-san, she desired

nothing else.

Rachel sat behind the petite woman and marvelled at Aprils ability to

capture feelings as well as images with her brush. "Its beautiful

April." The brown eyes turned toward Rachel's green orbs and they

shared a long loving look together.

The two ladies leaned toward each other and their soft lips met. The

slow loving kiss quickly turned passionate. The brush dropped from

April's hand to the floor, already forgotten - tomorrow there will be

another sunset.

--